summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/6901-0.txt
blob: 9fa238f482668fcf20337fe4ac39b06555c126fe (plain)
1
2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
10
11
12
13
14
15
16
17
18
19
20
21
22
23
24
25
26
27
28
29
30
31
32
33
34
35
36
37
38
39
40
41
42
43
44
45
46
47
48
49
50
51
52
53
54
55
56
57
58
59
60
61
62
63
64
65
66
67
68
69
70
71
72
73
74
75
76
77
78
79
80
81
82
83
84
85
86
87
88
89
90
91
92
93
94
95
96
97
98
99
100
101
102
103
104
105
106
107
108
109
110
111
112
113
114
115
116
117
118
119
120
121
122
123
124
125
126
127
128
129
130
131
132
133
134
135
136
137
138
139
140
141
142
143
144
145
146
147
148
149
150
151
152
153
154
155
156
157
158
159
160
161
162
163
164
165
166
167
168
169
170
171
172
173
174
175
176
177
178
179
180
181
182
183
184
185
186
187
188
189
190
191
192
193
194
195
196
197
198
199
200
201
202
203
204
205
206
207
208
209
210
211
212
213
214
215
216
217
218
219
220
221
222
223
224
225
226
227
228
229
230
231
232
233
234
235
236
237
238
239
240
241
242
243
244
245
246
247
248
249
250
251
252
253
254
255
256
257
258
259
260
261
262
263
264
265
266
267
268
269
270
271
272
273
274
275
276
277
278
279
280
281
282
283
284
285
286
287
288
289
290
291
292
293
294
295
296
297
298
299
300
301
302
303
304
305
306
307
308
309
310
311
312
313
314
315
316
317
318
319
320
321
322
323
324
325
326
327
328
329
330
331
332
333
334
335
336
337
338
339
340
341
342
343
344
345
346
347
348
349
350
351
352
353
354
355
356
357
358
359
360
361
362
363
364
365
366
367
368
369
370
371
372
373
374
375
376
377
378
379
380
381
382
383
384
385
386
387
388
389
390
391
392
393
394
395
396
397
398
399
400
401
402
403
404
405
406
407
408
409
410
411
412
413
414
415
416
417
418
419
420
421
422
423
424
425
426
427
428
429
430
431
432
433
434
435
436
437
438
439
440
441
442
443
444
445
446
447
448
449
450
451
452
453
454
455
456
457
458
459
460
461
462
463
464
465
466
467
468
469
470
471
472
473
474
475
476
477
478
479
480
481
482
483
484
485
486
487
488
489
490
491
492
493
494
495
496
497
498
499
500
501
502
503
504
505
506
507
508
509
510
511
512
513
514
515
516
517
518
519
520
521
522
523
524
525
526
527
528
529
530
531
532
533
534
535
536
537
538
539
540
541
542
543
544
545
546
547
548
549
550
551
552
553
554
555
556
557
558
559
560
561
562
563
564
565
566
567
568
569
570
571
572
573
574
575
576
577
578
579
580
581
582
583
584
585
586
587
588
589
590
591
592
593
594
595
596
597
598
599
600
601
602
603
604
605
606
607
608
609
610
611
612
613
614
615
616
617
618
619
620
621
622
623
624
625
626
627
628
629
630
631
632
633
634
635
636
637
638
639
640
641
642
643
644
645
646
647
648
649
650
651
652
653
654
655
656
657
658
659
660
661
662
663
664
665
666
667
668
669
670
671
672
673
674
675
676
677
678
679
680
681
682
683
684
685
686
687
688
689
690
691
692
693
694
695
696
697
698
699
700
701
702
703
704
705
706
707
708
709
710
711
712
713
714
715
716
717
718
719
720
721
722
723
724
725
726
727
728
729
730
731
732
733
734
735
736
737
738
739
740
741
742
743
744
745
746
747
748
749
750
751
752
753
754
755
756
757
758
759
760
761
762
763
764
765
766
767
768
769
770
771
772
773
774
775
776
777
778
779
780
781
782
783
784
785
786
787
788
789
790
791
792
793
794
795
796
797
798
799
800
801
802
803
804
805
806
807
808
809
810
811
812
813
814
815
816
817
818
819
820
821
822
823
824
825
826
827
828
829
830
831
832
833
834
835
836
837
838
839
840
841
842
843
844
845
846
847
848
849
850
851
852
853
854
855
856
857
858
859
860
861
862
863
864
865
866
867
868
869
870
871
872
873
874
875
876
877
878
879
880
881
882
883
884
885
886
887
888
889
890
891
892
893
894
895
896
897
898
899
900
901
902
903
904
905
906
907
908
909
910
911
912
913
914
915
916
917
918
919
920
921
922
923
924
925
926
927
928
929
930
931
932
933
934
935
936
937
938
939
940
941
942
943
944
945
946
947
948
949
950
951
952
953
954
955
956
957
958
959
960
961
962
963
964
965
966
967
968
969
970
971
972
973
974
975
976
977
978
979
980
981
982
983
984
985
986
987
988
989
990
991
992
993
994
995
996
997
998
999
1000
1001
1002
1003
1004
1005
1006
1007
1008
1009
1010
1011
1012
1013
1014
1015
1016
1017
1018
1019
1020
1021
1022
1023
1024
1025
1026
1027
1028
1029
1030
1031
1032
1033
1034
1035
1036
1037
1038
1039
1040
1041
1042
1043
1044
1045
1046
1047
1048
1049
1050
1051
1052
1053
1054
1055
1056
1057
1058
1059
1060
1061
1062
1063
1064
1065
1066
1067
1068
1069
1070
1071
1072
1073
1074
1075
1076
1077
1078
1079
1080
1081
1082
1083
1084
1085
1086
1087
1088
1089
1090
1091
1092
1093
1094
1095
1096
1097
1098
1099
1100
1101
1102
1103
1104
1105
1106
1107
1108
1109
1110
1111
1112
1113
1114
1115
1116
1117
1118
1119
1120
1121
1122
1123
1124
1125
1126
1127
1128
1129
1130
1131
1132
1133
1134
1135
1136
1137
1138
1139
1140
1141
1142
1143
1144
1145
1146
1147
1148
1149
1150
1151
1152
1153
1154
1155
1156
1157
1158
1159
1160
1161
1162
1163
1164
1165
1166
1167
1168
1169
1170
1171
1172
1173
1174
1175
1176
1177
1178
1179
1180
1181
1182
1183
1184
1185
1186
1187
1188
1189
1190
1191
1192
1193
1194
1195
1196
1197
1198
1199
1200
1201
1202
1203
1204
1205
1206
1207
1208
1209
1210
1211
1212
1213
1214
1215
1216
1217
1218
1219
1220
1221
1222
1223
1224
1225
1226
1227
1228
1229
1230
1231
1232
1233
1234
1235
1236
1237
1238
1239
1240
1241
1242
1243
1244
1245
1246
1247
1248
1249
1250
1251
1252
1253
1254
1255
1256
1257
1258
1259
1260
1261
1262
1263
1264
1265
1266
1267
1268
1269
1270
1271
1272
1273
1274
1275
1276
1277
1278
1279
1280
1281
1282
1283
1284
1285
1286
1287
1288
1289
1290
1291
1292
1293
1294
1295
1296
1297
1298
1299
1300
1301
1302
1303
1304
1305
1306
1307
1308
1309
1310
1311
1312
1313
1314
1315
1316
1317
1318
1319
1320
1321
1322
1323
1324
1325
1326
1327
1328
1329
1330
1331
1332
1333
1334
1335
1336
1337
1338
1339
1340
1341
1342
1343
1344
1345
1346
1347
1348
1349
1350
1351
1352
1353
1354
1355
1356
1357
1358
1359
1360
1361
1362
1363
1364
1365
1366
1367
1368
1369
1370
1371
1372
1373
1374
1375
1376
1377
1378
1379
1380
1381
1382
1383
1384
1385
1386
1387
1388
1389
1390
1391
1392
1393
1394
1395
1396
1397
1398
1399
1400
1401
1402
1403
1404
1405
1406
1407
1408
1409
1410
1411
1412
1413
1414
1415
1416
1417
1418
1419
1420
1421
1422
1423
1424
1425
1426
1427
1428
1429
1430
1431
1432
1433
1434
1435
1436
1437
1438
1439
1440
1441
1442
1443
1444
1445
1446
1447
1448
1449
1450
1451
1452
1453
1454
1455
1456
1457
1458
1459
1460
1461
1462
1463
1464
1465
1466
1467
1468
1469
1470
1471
1472
1473
1474
1475
1476
1477
1478
1479
1480
1481
1482
1483
1484
1485
1486
1487
1488
1489
1490
1491
1492
1493
1494
1495
1496
1497
1498
1499
1500
1501
1502
1503
1504
1505
1506
1507
1508
1509
1510
1511
1512
1513
1514
1515
1516
1517
1518
1519
1520
1521
1522
1523
1524
1525
1526
1527
1528
1529
1530
1531
1532
1533
1534
1535
1536
1537
1538
1539
1540
1541
1542
1543
1544
1545
1546
1547
1548
1549
1550
1551
1552
1553
1554
1555
1556
1557
1558
1559
1560
1561
1562
1563
1564
1565
1566
1567
1568
1569
1570
1571
1572
1573
1574
1575
1576
1577
1578
1579
1580
1581
1582
1583
1584
1585
1586
1587
1588
1589
1590
1591
1592
1593
1594
1595
1596
1597
1598
1599
1600
1601
1602
1603
1604
1605
1606
1607
1608
1609
1610
1611
1612
1613
1614
1615
1616
1617
1618
1619
1620
1621
1622
1623
1624
1625
1626
1627
1628
1629
1630
1631
1632
1633
1634
1635
1636
1637
1638
1639
1640
1641
1642
1643
1644
1645
1646
1647
1648
1649
1650
1651
1652
1653
1654
1655
1656
1657
1658
1659
1660
1661
1662
1663
1664
1665
1666
1667
1668
1669
1670
1671
1672
1673
1674
1675
1676
1677
1678
1679
1680
1681
1682
1683
1684
1685
1686
1687
1688
1689
1690
1691
1692
1693
1694
1695
1696
1697
1698
1699
1700
1701
1702
1703
1704
1705
1706
1707
1708
1709
1710
1711
1712
1713
1714
1715
1716
1717
1718
1719
1720
1721
1722
1723
1724
1725
1726
1727
1728
1729
1730
1731
1732
1733
1734
1735
1736
1737
1738
1739
1740
1741
1742
1743
1744
1745
1746
1747
1748
1749
1750
1751
1752
1753
1754
1755
1756
1757
1758
1759
1760
1761
1762
1763
1764
1765
1766
1767
1768
1769
1770
1771
1772
1773
1774
1775
1776
1777
1778
1779
1780
1781
1782
1783
1784
1785
1786
1787
1788
1789
1790
1791
1792
1793
1794
1795
1796
1797
1798
1799
1800
1801
1802
1803
1804
1805
1806
1807
1808
1809
1810
1811
1812
1813
1814
1815
1816
1817
1818
1819
1820
1821
1822
1823
1824
1825
1826
1827
1828
1829
1830
1831
1832
1833
1834
1835
1836
1837
1838
1839
1840
1841
1842
1843
1844
1845
1846
1847
1848
1849
1850
1851
1852
1853
1854
1855
1856
1857
1858
1859
1860
1861
1862
1863
1864
1865
1866
1867
1868
1869
1870
1871
1872
1873
1874
1875
1876
1877
1878
1879
1880
1881
1882
1883
1884
1885
1886
1887
1888
1889
1890
1891
1892
1893
1894
1895
1896
1897
1898
1899
1900
1901
1902
1903
1904
1905
1906
1907
1908
1909
1910
1911
1912
1913
1914
1915
1916
1917
1918
1919
1920
1921
1922
1923
1924
1925
1926
1927
1928
1929
1930
1931
1932
1933
1934
1935
1936
1937
1938
1939
1940
1941
1942
1943
1944
1945
1946
1947
1948
1949
1950
1951
1952
1953
1954
1955
1956
1957
1958
1959
1960
1961
1962
1963
1964
1965
1966
1967
1968
1969
1970
1971
1972
1973
1974
1975
1976
1977
1978
1979
1980
1981
1982
1983
1984
1985
1986
1987
1988
1989
1990
1991
1992
1993
1994
1995
1996
1997
1998
1999
2000
2001
2002
2003
2004
2005
2006
2007
2008
2009
2010
2011
2012
2013
2014
2015
2016
2017
2018
2019
2020
2021
2022
2023
2024
2025
2026
2027
2028
2029
2030
2031
2032
2033
2034
2035
2036
2037
2038
2039
2040
2041
2042
2043
2044
2045
2046
2047
2048
2049
2050
2051
2052
2053
2054
2055
2056
2057
2058
2059
2060
2061
2062
2063
2064
2065
2066
2067
2068
2069
2070
2071
2072
2073
2074
2075
2076
2077
2078
2079
2080
2081
2082
2083
2084
2085
2086
2087
2088
2089
2090
2091
2092
2093
2094
2095
2096
2097
2098
2099
2100
2101
2102
2103
2104
2105
2106
2107
2108
2109
2110
2111
2112
2113
2114
2115
2116
2117
2118
2119
2120
2121
2122
2123
2124
2125
2126
2127
2128
2129
2130
2131
2132
2133
2134
2135
2136
2137
2138
2139
2140
2141
2142
2143
2144
2145
2146
2147
2148
2149
2150
2151
2152
2153
2154
2155
2156
2157
2158
2159
2160
2161
2162
2163
2164
2165
2166
2167
2168
2169
2170
2171
2172
2173
2174
2175
2176
2177
2178
2179
2180
2181
2182
2183
2184
2185
2186
2187
2188
2189
2190
2191
2192
2193
2194
2195
2196
2197
2198
2199
2200
2201
2202
2203
2204
2205
2206
2207
2208
2209
2210
2211
2212
2213
2214
2215
2216
2217
2218
2219
2220
2221
2222
2223
2224
2225
2226
2227
2228
2229
2230
2231
2232
2233
2234
2235
2236
2237
2238
2239
2240
2241
2242
2243
2244
2245
2246
2247
2248
2249
2250
2251
2252
2253
2254
2255
2256
2257
2258
2259
2260
2261
2262
2263
2264
2265
2266
2267
2268
2269
2270
2271
2272
2273
2274
2275
2276
2277
2278
2279
2280
2281
2282
2283
2284
2285
2286
2287
2288
2289
2290
2291
2292
2293
2294
2295
2296
2297
2298
2299
2300
2301
2302
2303
2304
2305
2306
2307
2308
2309
2310
2311
2312
2313
2314
2315
2316
2317
2318
2319
2320
2321
2322
2323
2324
2325
2326
2327
2328
2329
2330
2331
2332
2333
2334
2335
2336
2337
2338
2339
2340
2341
2342
2343
2344
2345
2346
2347
2348
2349
2350
2351
2352
2353
2354
2355
2356
2357
2358
2359
2360
2361
2362
2363
2364
2365
2366
2367
2368
2369
2370
2371
2372
2373
2374
2375
2376
2377
2378
2379
2380
2381
2382
2383
2384
2385
2386
2387
2388
2389
2390
2391
2392
2393
2394
2395
2396
2397
2398
2399
2400
2401
2402
2403
2404
2405
2406
2407
2408
2409
2410
2411
2412
2413
2414
2415
2416
2417
2418
2419
2420
2421
2422
2423
2424
2425
2426
2427
2428
2429
2430
2431
2432
2433
2434
2435
2436
2437
2438
2439
2440
2441
2442
2443
2444
2445
2446
2447
2448
2449
2450
2451
2452
2453
2454
2455
2456
2457
2458
2459
2460
2461
2462
2463
2464
2465
2466
2467
2468
2469
2470
2471
2472
2473
2474
2475
2476
2477
2478
2479
2480
2481
2482
2483
2484
2485
2486
2487
2488
2489
2490
2491
2492
2493
2494
2495
2496
2497
2498
2499
2500
2501
2502
2503
2504
2505
2506
2507
2508
2509
2510
2511
2512
2513
2514
2515
2516
2517
2518
2519
2520
2521
2522
2523
2524
2525
2526
2527
2528
2529
2530
2531
2532
2533
2534
2535
2536
2537
2538
2539
2540
2541
2542
2543
2544
2545
2546
2547
2548
2549
2550
2551
2552
2553
2554
2555
2556
2557
2558
2559
2560
2561
2562
2563
2564
2565
2566
2567
2568
2569
2570
2571
2572
2573
2574
2575
2576
2577
2578
2579
2580
2581
2582
2583
2584
2585
2586
2587
2588
2589
2590
2591
2592
2593
2594
2595
2596
2597
2598
2599
2600
2601
2602
2603
2604
2605
2606
2607
2608
2609
2610
2611
2612
2613
2614
2615
2616
2617
2618
2619
2620
2621
2622
2623
2624
2625
2626
2627
2628
2629
2630
2631
2632
2633
2634
2635
2636
2637
2638
2639
2640
2641
2642
2643
2644
2645
2646
2647
2648
2649
2650
2651
2652
2653
2654
2655
2656
2657
2658
2659
2660
2661
2662
2663
2664
2665
2666
2667
2668
2669
2670
2671
2672
2673
2674
2675
2676
2677
2678
2679
2680
2681
2682
2683
2684
2685
2686
2687
2688
2689
2690
2691
2692
2693
2694
2695
2696
2697
2698
2699
2700
2701
2702
2703
2704
2705
2706
2707
2708
2709
2710
2711
2712
2713
2714
2715
2716
2717
2718
2719
2720
2721
2722
2723
2724
2725
2726
2727
2728
2729
2730
2731
2732
2733
2734
2735
2736
2737
2738
2739
2740
2741
2742
2743
2744
2745
2746
2747
2748
2749
2750
2751
2752
2753
2754
2755
2756
2757
2758
2759
2760
2761
2762
2763
2764
2765
2766
2767
2768
2769
2770
2771
2772
2773
2774
2775
2776
2777
2778
2779
2780
2781
2782
2783
2784
2785
2786
2787
2788
2789
2790
2791
2792
2793
2794
2795
2796
2797
2798
2799
2800
2801
2802
2803
2804
2805
2806
2807
2808
2809
2810
2811
2812
2813
2814
2815
2816
2817
2818
2819
2820
2821
2822
2823
2824
2825
2826
2827
2828
2829
2830
2831
2832
2833
2834
2835
2836
2837
2838
2839
2840
2841
2842
2843
2844
2845
2846
2847
2848
2849
2850
2851
2852
2853
2854
2855
2856
2857
2858
2859
2860
2861
2862
2863
2864
2865
2866
2867
2868
2869
2870
2871
2872
2873
2874
2875
2876
2877
2878
2879
2880
2881
2882
2883
2884
2885
2886
2887
2888
2889
2890
2891
2892
2893
2894
2895
2896
2897
2898
2899
2900
2901
2902
2903
2904
2905
2906
2907
2908
2909
2910
2911
2912
2913
2914
2915
2916
2917
2918
2919
2920
2921
2922
2923
2924
2925
2926
2927
2928
2929
2930
2931
2932
2933
2934
2935
2936
2937
2938
2939
2940
2941
2942
2943
2944
2945
2946
2947
2948
2949
2950
2951
2952
2953
2954
2955
2956
2957
2958
2959
2960
2961
2962
2963
2964
2965
2966
2967
2968
2969
2970
2971
2972
2973
2974
2975
2976
2977
2978
2979
2980
2981
2982
2983
2984
2985
2986
2987
2988
2989
2990
2991
2992
2993
2994
2995
2996
2997
2998
2999
3000
3001
3002
3003
3004
3005
3006
3007
3008
3009
3010
3011
3012
3013
3014
3015
3016
3017
3018
3019
3020
3021
3022
3023
3024
3025
3026
3027
3028
3029
3030
3031
3032
3033
3034
3035
3036
3037
3038
3039
3040
3041
3042
3043
3044
3045
3046
3047
3048
3049
3050
3051
3052
3053
3054
3055
3056
3057
3058
3059
3060
3061
3062
3063
3064
3065
3066
3067
3068
3069
3070
3071
3072
3073
3074
3075
3076
3077
3078
3079
3080
3081
3082
3083
3084
3085
3086
3087
3088
3089
3090
3091
3092
3093
3094
3095
3096
3097
3098
3099
3100
3101
3102
3103
3104
3105
3106
3107
3108
3109
3110
3111
3112
3113
3114
3115
3116
3117
3118
3119
3120
3121
3122
3123
3124
3125
3126
3127
3128
3129
3130
3131
3132
3133
3134
3135
3136
3137
3138
3139
3140
3141
3142
3143
3144
3145
3146
3147
3148
3149
3150
3151
3152
3153
3154
3155
3156
3157
3158
3159
3160
3161
3162
3163
3164
3165
3166
3167
3168
3169
3170
3171
3172
3173
3174
3175
3176
3177
3178
3179
3180
3181
3182
3183
3184
3185
3186
3187
3188
3189
3190
3191
3192
3193
3194
3195
3196
3197
3198
3199
3200
3201
3202
3203
3204
3205
3206
3207
3208
3209
3210
3211
3212
3213
3214
3215
3216
3217
3218
3219
3220
3221
3222
3223
3224
3225
3226
3227
3228
3229
3230
3231
3232
3233
3234
3235
3236
3237
3238
3239
3240
3241
3242
3243
3244
3245
3246
3247
3248
3249
3250
3251
3252
3253
3254
3255
3256
3257
3258
3259
3260
3261
3262
3263
3264
3265
3266
3267
3268
3269
3270
3271
3272
3273
3274
3275
3276
3277
3278
3279
3280
3281
3282
3283
3284
3285
3286
3287
3288
3289
3290
3291
3292
3293
3294
3295
3296
3297
3298
3299
3300
3301
3302
3303
3304
3305
3306
3307
3308
3309
3310
3311
3312
3313
3314
3315
3316
3317
3318
3319
3320
3321
3322
3323
3324
3325
3326
3327
3328
3329
3330
3331
3332
3333
3334
3335
3336
3337
3338
3339
3340
3341
3342
3343
3344
3345
3346
3347
3348
3349
3350
3351
3352
3353
3354
3355
3356
3357
3358
3359
3360
3361
3362
3363
3364
3365
3366
3367
3368
3369
3370
3371
3372
3373
3374
3375
3376
3377
3378
3379
3380
3381
3382
3383
3384
3385
3386
3387
3388
3389
3390
3391
3392
3393
3394
3395
3396
3397
3398
3399
3400
3401
3402
3403
3404
3405
3406
3407
3408
3409
3410
3411
3412
3413
3414
3415
3416
3417
3418
3419
3420
3421
3422
3423
3424
3425
3426
3427
3428
3429
3430
3431
3432
3433
3434
3435
3436
3437
3438
3439
3440
3441
3442
3443
3444
3445
3446
3447
3448
3449
3450
3451
3452
3453
3454
3455
3456
3457
3458
3459
3460
3461
3462
3463
3464
3465
3466
3467
3468
3469
3470
3471
3472
3473
3474
3475
3476
3477
3478
3479
3480
3481
3482
3483
3484
3485
3486
3487
3488
3489
3490
3491
3492
3493
3494
3495
3496
3497
3498
3499
3500
3501
3502
3503
3504
3505
3506
3507
3508
3509
3510
3511
3512
3513
3514
3515
3516
3517
3518
3519
3520
3521
3522
3523
3524
3525
3526
3527
3528
3529
3530
3531
3532
3533
3534
3535
3536
3537
3538
3539
3540
3541
3542
3543
3544
3545
3546
3547
3548
3549
3550
3551
3552
3553
3554
3555
3556
3557
3558
3559
3560
3561
3562
3563
3564
3565
3566
3567
3568
3569
3570
3571
3572
3573
3574
3575
3576
3577
3578
3579
3580
3581
3582
3583
3584
3585
3586
3587
3588
3589
3590
3591
3592
3593
3594
3595
3596
3597
3598
3599
3600
3601
3602
3603
3604
3605
3606
3607
3608
3609
3610
3611
3612
3613
3614
3615
3616
3617
3618
3619
3620
3621
3622
3623
3624
3625
3626
3627
3628
3629
3630
3631
3632
3633
3634
3635
3636
3637
3638
3639
3640
3641
3642
3643
3644
3645
3646
3647
3648
3649
3650
3651
3652
3653
3654
3655
3656
3657
3658
3659
3660
3661
3662
3663
3664
3665
3666
3667
3668
3669
3670
3671
3672
3673
3674
3675
3676
3677
3678
3679
3680
3681
3682
3683
3684
3685
3686
3687
3688
3689
3690
3691
3692
3693
3694
3695
3696
3697
3698
3699
3700
3701
3702
3703
3704
3705
3706
3707
3708
3709
3710
3711
3712
3713
3714
3715
3716
3717
3718
3719
3720
3721
3722
3723
3724
3725
3726
3727
3728
3729
3730
3731
3732
3733
3734
3735
3736
3737
3738
3739
3740
3741
3742
3743
3744
3745
3746
3747
3748
3749
3750
3751
3752
3753
3754
3755
3756
3757
3758
3759
3760
3761
3762
3763
3764
3765
3766
3767
3768
3769
3770
3771
3772
3773
3774
3775
3776
3777
3778
3779
3780
3781
3782
3783
3784
3785
3786
3787
3788
3789
3790
3791
3792
3793
3794
3795
3796
3797
3798
3799
3800
3801
3802
3803
3804
3805
3806
3807
3808
3809
3810
3811
3812
3813
3814
3815
3816
3817
3818
3819
3820
3821
3822
3823
3824
3825
3826
3827
3828
3829
3830
3831
3832
3833
3834
3835
3836
3837
3838
3839
3840
3841
3842
3843
3844
3845
3846
3847
3848
3849
3850
3851
3852
3853
3854
3855
3856
3857
3858
3859
3860
3861
3862
3863
3864
3865
3866
3867
3868
3869
3870
3871
3872
3873
3874
3875
3876
3877
3878
3879
3880
3881
3882
3883
3884
3885
3886
3887
3888
3889
3890
3891
3892
3893
3894
3895
3896
3897
3898
3899
3900
3901
3902
3903
3904
3905
3906
3907
3908
3909
3910
3911
3912
3913
3914
3915
3916
3917
3918
3919
3920
3921
3922
3923
3924
3925
3926
3927
3928
3929
3930
3931
3932
3933
3934
3935
3936
3937
3938
3939
3940
3941
3942
3943
3944
3945
3946
3947
3948
3949
3950
3951
3952
3953
3954
3955
3956
3957
3958
3959
3960
3961
3962
3963
3964
3965
3966
3967
3968
3969
3970
3971
3972
3973
3974
3975
3976
3977
3978
3979
3980
3981
3982
3983
3984
3985
3986
3987
3988
3989
3990
3991
3992
3993
3994
3995
3996
3997
3998
3999
4000
4001
4002
4003
4004
4005
4006
4007
4008
4009
4010
4011
4012
4013
4014
4015
4016
4017
4018
4019
4020
4021
4022
4023
4024
4025
4026
4027
4028
4029
4030
4031
4032
4033
4034
4035
4036
4037
4038
4039
4040
4041
4042
4043
4044
4045
4046
4047
4048
4049
4050
4051
4052
4053
4054
4055
4056
4057
4058
4059
4060
4061
4062
4063
4064
4065
4066
4067
4068
4069
4070
4071
4072
4073
4074
4075
4076
4077
4078
4079
4080
4081
4082
4083
4084
4085
4086
4087
4088
4089
4090
4091
4092
4093
4094
4095
4096
4097
4098
4099
4100
4101
4102
4103
4104
4105
4106
4107
4108
4109
4110
4111
4112
4113
4114
4115
4116
4117
4118
4119
4120
4121
4122
4123
4124
4125
4126
4127
4128
4129
4130
4131
4132
4133
4134
4135
4136
4137
4138
4139
4140
4141
4142
4143
4144
4145
4146
4147
4148
4149
4150
4151
4152
4153
4154
4155
4156
4157
4158
4159
4160
4161
4162
4163
4164
4165
4166
4167
4168
4169
4170
4171
4172
4173
4174
4175
4176
4177
4178
4179
4180
4181
4182
4183
4184
4185
4186
4187
4188
4189
4190
4191
4192
4193
4194
4195
4196
4197
4198
4199
4200
4201
4202
4203
4204
4205
4206
4207
4208
4209
4210
4211
4212
4213
4214
4215
4216
4217
4218
4219
4220
4221
4222
4223
4224
4225
4226
4227
4228
4229
4230
4231
4232
4233
4234
4235
4236
4237
4238
4239
4240
4241
4242
4243
4244
4245
4246
4247
4248
4249
4250
4251
4252
4253
4254
4255
4256
4257
4258
4259
4260
4261
4262
4263
4264
4265
4266
4267
4268
4269
4270
4271
4272
4273
4274
4275
4276
4277
4278
4279
4280
4281
4282
4283
4284
4285
4286
4287
4288
4289
4290
4291
4292
4293
4294
4295
4296
4297
4298
4299
4300
4301
4302
4303
4304
4305
4306
4307
4308
4309
4310
4311
4312
4313
4314
4315
4316
4317
4318
4319
4320
4321
4322
4323
4324
4325
4326
4327
4328
4329
4330
4331
4332
4333
4334
4335
4336
4337
4338
4339
4340
4341
4342
4343
4344
4345
4346
4347
4348
4349
4350
4351
4352
4353
4354
4355
4356
4357
4358
4359
4360
4361
4362
4363
4364
4365
4366
4367
4368
4369
4370
4371
4372
4373
4374
4375
4376
4377
4378
4379
4380
4381
4382
4383
4384
4385
4386
4387
4388
4389
4390
4391
4392
4393
4394
4395
4396
4397
4398
4399
4400
4401
4402
4403
4404
4405
4406
4407
4408
4409
4410
4411
4412
4413
4414
4415
4416
4417
4418
4419
4420
4421
4422
4423
4424
4425
4426
4427
4428
4429
4430
4431
4432
4433
4434
4435
4436
4437
4438
4439
4440
4441
4442
4443
4444
4445
4446
4447
4448
4449
4450
4451
4452
4453
4454
4455
4456
4457
4458
4459
4460
4461
4462
4463
4464
4465
4466
4467
4468
4469
4470
4471
4472
4473
4474
4475
4476
4477
4478
4479
4480
4481
4482
4483
4484
4485
4486
4487
4488
4489
4490
4491
4492
4493
4494
4495
4496
4497
4498
4499
4500
4501
4502
4503
4504
4505
4506
4507
4508
4509
4510
4511
4512
4513
4514
4515
4516
4517
4518
4519
4520
4521
4522
4523
4524
4525
4526
4527
4528
4529
4530
4531
4532
4533
4534
4535
4536
4537
4538
4539
4540
4541
4542
4543
4544
4545
4546
4547
4548
4549
4550
4551
4552
4553
4554
4555
4556
4557
4558
4559
4560
4561
4562
4563
4564
4565
4566
4567
4568
4569
4570
4571
4572
4573
4574
4575
4576
4577
4578
4579
4580
4581
4582
4583
4584
4585
4586
4587
4588
4589
4590
4591
4592
4593
4594
4595
4596
4597
4598
4599
4600
4601
4602
4603
4604
4605
4606
4607
4608
4609
4610
4611
4612
4613
4614
4615
4616
4617
4618
4619
4620
4621
4622
4623
4624
4625
4626
4627
4628
4629
4630
4631
4632
4633
4634
4635
4636
4637
4638
4639
4640
4641
4642
4643
4644
4645
4646
4647
4648
4649
4650
4651
4652
4653
4654
4655
4656
4657
4658
4659
4660
4661
4662
4663
4664
4665
4666
4667
4668
4669
4670
4671
4672
4673
4674
4675
4676
4677
4678
4679
4680
4681
4682
4683
4684
4685
4686
4687
4688
4689
4690
4691
4692
4693
4694
4695
4696
4697
4698
4699
4700
4701
4702
4703
4704
4705
4706
4707
4708
4709
4710
4711
4712
4713
4714
4715
4716
4717
4718
4719
4720
4721
4722
4723
4724
4725
4726
4727
4728
4729
4730
4731
4732
4733
4734
4735
4736
4737
4738
4739
4740
4741
4742
4743
4744
4745
4746
4747
4748
4749
4750
4751
4752
4753
4754
4755
4756
4757
4758
4759
4760
4761
4762
4763
4764
4765
4766
4767
4768
4769
4770
4771
4772
4773
4774
4775
4776
4777
4778
4779
4780
4781
4782
4783
4784
4785
4786
4787
4788
4789
4790
4791
4792
4793
4794
4795
4796
4797
4798
4799
4800
4801
4802
4803
4804
4805
4806
4807
4808
4809
4810
4811
4812
4813
4814
4815
4816
4817
4818
4819
4820
4821
4822
4823
4824
4825
4826
4827
4828
4829
4830
4831
4832
4833
4834
4835
4836
4837
4838
4839
4840
4841
4842
4843
4844
4845
4846
4847
4848
4849
4850
4851
4852
4853
4854
4855
4856
4857
4858
4859
4860
4861
4862
4863
4864
4865
4866
4867
4868
4869
4870
4871
4872
4873
4874
4875
4876
4877
4878
4879
4880
4881
4882
4883
4884
4885
4886
4887
4888
4889
4890
4891
4892
4893
4894
4895
4896
4897
4898
4899
4900
4901
4902
4903
4904
4905
4906
4907
4908
4909
4910
4911
4912
4913
4914
4915
4916
4917
4918
4919
4920
4921
4922
4923
4924
4925
4926
4927
4928
4929
4930
4931
4932
4933
4934
4935
4936
4937
4938
4939
4940
4941
4942
4943
4944
4945
4946
4947
4948
4949
4950
4951
4952
4953
4954
4955
4956
4957
4958
4959
4960
4961
4962
4963
4964
4965
4966
4967
4968
4969
4970
4971
4972
4973
4974
4975
4976
4977
4978
4979
4980
4981
4982
4983
4984
4985
4986
4987
4988
4989
4990
4991
4992
4993
4994
4995
4996
4997
4998
4999
5000
5001
5002
5003
5004
5005
5006
5007
5008
5009
5010
5011
5012
5013
5014
5015
5016
5017
5018
5019
5020
5021
5022
5023
5024
5025
5026
5027
5028
5029
5030
5031
5032
5033
5034
5035
5036
5037
5038
5039
5040
5041
5042
5043
5044
5045
5046
5047
5048
5049
5050
5051
5052
5053
5054
5055
5056
5057
5058
5059
5060
5061
5062
5063
5064
5065
5066
5067
5068
5069
5070
5071
5072
5073
5074
5075
5076
5077
5078
5079
5080
5081
5082
5083
5084
5085
5086
5087
5088
5089
5090
5091
5092
5093
5094
5095
5096
5097
5098
5099
5100
5101
5102
5103
5104
5105
5106
5107
5108
5109
5110
5111
5112
5113
5114
5115
5116
5117
5118
5119
5120
5121
5122
5123
5124
5125
5126
5127
5128
5129
5130
5131
5132
5133
5134
5135
5136
5137
5138
5139
5140
5141
5142
5143
5144
5145
5146
5147
5148
5149
5150
5151
5152
5153
5154
5155
5156
5157
5158
5159
5160
5161
5162
5163
5164
5165
5166
5167
5168
5169
5170
5171
5172
5173
5174
5175
5176
5177
5178
5179
5180
5181
5182
5183
5184
5185
5186
5187
5188
5189
5190
5191
5192
5193
5194
5195
5196
5197
5198
5199
5200
5201
5202
5203
5204
5205
5206
5207
5208
5209
5210
5211
5212
5213
5214
5215
5216
5217
5218
5219
5220
5221
5222
5223
5224
5225
5226
5227
5228
5229
5230
5231
5232
5233
5234
5235
5236
5237
5238
5239
5240
5241
5242
5243
5244
5245
5246
5247
5248
5249
5250
5251
5252
5253
5254
5255
5256
5257
5258
5259
5260
5261
5262
5263
5264
5265
5266
5267
5268
5269
5270
5271
5272
5273
5274
5275
5276
5277
5278
5279
5280
5281
5282
5283
5284
5285
5286
5287
5288
5289
5290
5291
5292
5293
5294
5295
5296
5297
5298
5299
5300
5301
5302
5303
5304
5305
5306
5307
5308
5309
5310
5311
5312
5313
5314
5315
5316
5317
5318
5319
5320
5321
5322
5323
5324
5325
5326
5327
5328
5329
5330
5331
5332
5333
5334
5335
5336
5337
5338
5339
5340
5341
5342
5343
5344
5345
5346
5347
5348
5349
5350
5351
5352
5353
5354
5355
5356
5357
5358
5359
5360
5361
5362
5363
5364
5365
5366
5367
5368
5369
5370
5371
5372
5373
5374
5375
5376
5377
5378
5379
5380
5381
5382
5383
5384
5385
5386
5387
5388
5389
5390
5391
5392
5393
5394
5395
5396
5397
5398
5399
5400
5401
5402
5403
5404
5405
5406
5407
5408
5409
5410
5411
5412
5413
5414
5415
5416
5417
5418
5419
5420
5421
5422
5423
5424
5425
5426
5427
5428
5429
5430
5431
5432
5433
5434
5435
5436
5437
5438
5439
5440
5441
5442
5443
5444
5445
5446
5447
5448
5449
5450
5451
5452
5453
5454
5455
5456
5457
5458
5459
5460
5461
5462
5463
5464
5465
5466
5467
5468
5469
5470
5471
5472
5473
5474
5475
5476
5477
5478
5479
5480
5481
5482
5483
5484
5485
5486
5487
5488
5489
5490
5491
5492
5493
5494
5495
5496
5497
5498
5499
5500
5501
5502
5503
5504
5505
5506
5507
5508
5509
5510
5511
5512
5513
5514
5515
5516
5517
5518
5519
5520
5521
5522
5523
5524
5525
5526
5527
5528
5529
5530
5531
5532
5533
5534
5535
5536
5537
5538
5539
5540
5541
5542
5543
5544
5545
5546
5547
5548
5549
5550
5551
5552
5553
5554
5555
5556
5557
5558
5559
5560
5561
5562
5563
5564
5565
5566
5567
5568
5569
5570
5571
5572
5573
5574
5575
5576
5577
5578
5579
5580
5581
5582
5583
5584
5585
5586
5587
5588
5589
5590
5591
5592
5593
5594
5595
5596
5597
5598
5599
5600
5601
5602
5603
5604
5605
5606
5607
5608
5609
5610
5611
5612
5613
5614
5615
5616
5617
5618
5619
5620
5621
5622
5623
5624
5625
5626
5627
5628
5629
5630
5631
5632
5633
5634
5635
5636
5637
5638
5639
5640
5641
5642
5643
5644
5645
5646
5647
5648
5649
5650
5651
5652
5653
5654
5655
5656
5657
5658
5659
5660
5661
5662
5663
5664
5665
5666
5667
5668
5669
5670
5671
5672
5673
5674
5675
5676
5677
5678
5679
5680
5681
5682
5683
5684
5685
5686
5687
5688
5689
5690
5691
5692
5693
5694
5695
5696
5697
5698
5699
5700
5701
5702
5703
5704
5705
5706
5707
5708
5709
5710
5711
5712
5713
5714
5715
5716
5717
5718
5719
5720
5721
5722
5723
5724
5725
5726
5727
5728
5729
5730
5731
5732
5733
5734
5735
5736
5737
5738
5739
5740
5741
5742
5743
5744
5745
5746
5747
5748
5749
5750
5751
5752
5753
5754
5755
5756
5757
5758
5759
5760
5761
5762
5763
5764
5765
5766
5767
5768
5769
5770
5771
5772
5773
5774
5775
5776
5777
5778
5779
5780
5781
5782
5783
5784
5785
5786
5787
5788
5789
5790
5791
5792
5793
5794
5795
5796
5797
5798
5799
5800
5801
5802
5803
5804
5805
5806
5807
5808
5809
5810
5811
5812
5813
5814
5815
5816
5817
5818
5819
5820
5821
5822
5823
5824
5825
5826
5827
5828
5829
5830
5831
5832
5833
5834
5835
5836
5837
5838
5839
5840
5841
5842
5843
5844
5845
5846
5847
5848
5849
5850
5851
5852
5853
5854
5855
5856
5857
5858
5859
5860
5861
5862
5863
5864
5865
5866
5867
5868
5869
5870
5871
5872
5873
5874
5875
5876
5877
5878
5879
5880
5881
5882
5883
5884
5885
5886
5887
5888
5889
5890
5891
5892
5893
5894
5895
5896
5897
5898
5899
5900
5901
5902
5903
5904
5905
5906
5907
5908
5909
5910
5911
5912
5913
5914
5915
5916
5917
5918
5919
5920
5921
5922
5923
5924
5925
5926
5927
5928
5929
5930
5931
5932
5933
5934
5935
5936
5937
5938
5939
5940
5941
5942
5943
5944
5945
5946
5947
5948
5949
5950
5951
5952
5953
5954
5955
5956
5957
5958
5959
5960
5961
5962
5963
5964
5965
5966
5967
5968
5969
5970
5971
5972
5973
5974
5975
5976
5977
5978
5979
5980
5981
5982
5983
5984
5985
5986
5987
5988
5989
5990
5991
5992
5993
5994
5995
5996
5997
5998
5999
6000
6001
6002
6003
6004
6005
6006
6007
6008
6009
6010
6011
6012
6013
6014
6015
6016
6017
6018
6019
6020
6021
6022
6023
6024
6025
6026
6027
6028
6029
6030
6031
6032
6033
6034
6035
6036
6037
6038
6039
6040
6041
6042
6043
6044
6045
6046
6047
6048
6049
6050
6051
6052
6053
6054
6055
6056
6057
6058
6059
6060
6061
6062
6063
6064
6065
6066
6067
6068
6069
6070
6071
6072
6073
6074
6075
6076
6077
6078
6079
6080
6081
6082
6083
6084
6085
6086
6087
6088
6089
6090
6091
6092
6093
6094
6095
6096
6097
6098
6099
6100
6101
6102
6103
6104
6105
6106
6107
6108
6109
6110
6111
6112
6113
6114
6115
6116
6117
6118
6119
6120
6121
6122
6123
6124
6125
6126
6127
6128
6129
6130
6131
6132
6133
6134
6135
6136
6137
6138
6139
6140
6141
6142
6143
6144
6145
6146
6147
6148
6149
6150
6151
6152
6153
6154
6155
6156
6157
6158
6159
6160
6161
6162
6163
6164
6165
6166
6167
6168
6169
6170
6171
6172
6173
6174
6175
6176
6177
6178
6179
6180
6181
6182
6183
6184
6185
6186
6187
6188
6189
6190
6191
6192
6193
6194
6195
6196
6197
6198
6199
6200
6201
6202
6203
6204
6205
6206
6207
6208
6209
6210
6211
6212
6213
6214
6215
6216
6217
6218
6219
6220
6221
6222
6223
6224
6225
6226
6227
6228
6229
6230
6231
6232
6233
6234
6235
6236
6237
6238
6239
6240
6241
6242
6243
6244
6245
6246
6247
6248
6249
6250
6251
6252
6253
6254
6255
6256
6257
6258
6259
6260
6261
6262
6263
6264
6265
6266
6267
6268
6269
6270
6271
6272
6273
6274
6275
6276
6277
6278
6279
6280
6281
6282
6283
6284
6285
6286
6287
6288
6289
6290
6291
6292
6293
6294
6295
6296
6297
6298
6299
6300
6301
6302
6303
6304
6305
6306
6307
6308
6309
6310
6311
6312
6313
6314
6315
6316
6317
6318
6319
6320
6321
6322
6323
6324
6325
6326
6327
6328
6329
6330
6331
6332
6333
6334
6335
6336
6337
6338
6339
6340
6341
6342
6343
6344
6345
6346
6347
6348
6349
6350
6351
6352
6353
6354
6355
6356
6357
6358
6359
6360
6361
6362
6363
6364
6365
6366
6367
6368
6369
6370
6371
6372
6373
6374
6375
6376
6377
6378
6379
6380
6381
6382
6383
6384
6385
6386
6387
6388
6389
6390
6391
6392
6393
6394
6395
6396
6397
6398
6399
6400
6401
6402
6403
6404
6405
6406
6407
6408
6409
6410
6411
6412
6413
6414
6415
6416
6417
6418
6419
6420
6421
6422
6423
6424
6425
6426
6427
6428
6429
6430
6431
6432
6433
6434
6435
6436
6437
6438
6439
6440
6441
6442
6443
6444
6445
6446
6447
6448
6449
6450
6451
6452
6453
6454
6455
6456
6457
6458
6459
6460
6461
6462
6463
6464
6465
6466
6467
6468
6469
6470
6471
6472
6473
6474
6475
6476
6477
6478
6479
6480
6481
6482
6483
6484
6485
6486
6487
6488
6489
6490
6491
6492
6493
6494
6495
6496
6497
6498
6499
6500
6501
6502
6503
6504
6505
6506
6507
6508
6509
6510
6511
6512
6513
6514
6515
6516
6517
6518
6519
6520
6521
6522
6523
6524
6525
6526
6527
6528
6529
6530
6531
6532
6533
6534
6535
6536
6537
6538
6539
6540
6541
6542
6543
6544
6545
6546
6547
6548
6549
6550
6551
6552
6553
6554
6555
6556
6557
6558
6559
6560
6561
6562
6563
6564
6565
6566
6567
6568
6569
6570
6571
6572
6573
6574
6575
6576
6577
6578
6579
6580
6581
6582
6583
6584
6585
6586
6587
6588
6589
6590
6591
6592
6593
6594
6595
6596
6597
6598
6599
6600
6601
6602
6603
6604
6605
6606
6607
6608
6609
6610
6611
6612
6613
6614
6615
6616
6617
6618
6619
6620
6621
6622
6623
6624
6625
6626
6627
6628
6629
6630
6631
6632
6633
6634
6635
6636
6637
6638
6639
6640
6641
6642
6643
6644
6645
6646
6647
6648
6649
6650
6651
6652
6653
6654
6655
6656
6657
6658
6659
6660
6661
6662
6663
6664
6665
6666
6667
6668
6669
6670
6671
6672
6673
6674
6675
6676
6677
6678
6679
6680
6681
6682
6683
6684
6685
6686
6687
6688
6689
6690
6691
6692
6693
6694
6695
6696
6697
6698
6699
6700
6701
6702
6703
6704
6705
6706
6707
6708
6709
6710
6711
6712
6713
6714
6715
6716
6717
6718
6719
6720
6721
6722
6723
6724
6725
6726
6727
6728
6729
6730
6731
6732
6733
6734
6735
6736
6737
6738
6739
6740
6741
6742
6743
6744
6745
6746
6747
6748
6749
6750
6751
6752
6753
6754
6755
6756
6757
6758
6759
6760
6761
6762
6763
6764
6765
6766
6767
6768
6769
6770
6771
6772
6773
6774
6775
6776
6777
6778
6779
6780
6781
6782
6783
6784
6785
6786
6787
6788
6789
6790
6791
6792
6793
6794
6795
6796
6797
6798
6799
6800
6801
6802
6803
6804
6805
6806
6807
6808
6809
6810
6811
6812
6813
6814
6815
6816
6817
6818
6819
6820
6821
6822
6823
6824
6825
6826
6827
6828
6829
6830
6831
6832
6833
6834
6835
6836
6837
6838
6839
6840
6841
6842
6843
6844
6845
6846
6847
6848
6849
6850
6851
6852
6853
6854
6855
6856
6857
6858
6859
6860
6861
6862
6863
6864
6865
6866
6867
6868
6869
6870
6871
6872
6873
6874
6875
6876
6877
6878
6879
6880
6881
6882
6883
6884
6885
6886
6887
6888
6889
6890
6891
6892
6893
6894
6895
6896
6897
6898
6899
6900
6901
6902
6903
6904
6905
6906
6907
6908
6909
6910
6911
6912
6913
6914
6915
6916
6917
6918
6919
6920
6921
6922
6923
6924
6925
6926
6927
6928
6929
6930
6931
6932
6933
6934
6935
6936
6937
6938
6939
6940
6941
6942
6943
6944
6945
6946
6947
6948
6949
6950
6951
6952
6953
6954
6955
6956
6957
6958
6959
6960
6961
6962
6963
6964
6965
6966
6967
6968
6969
6970
6971
6972
6973
6974
6975
6976
6977
6978
6979
6980
6981
6982
6983
6984
6985
6986
6987
6988
6989
6990
6991
6992
6993
6994
6995
6996
6997
6998
6999
7000
7001
7002
7003
7004
7005
7006
7007
7008
7009
7010
7011
7012
7013
7014
7015
7016
7017
7018
7019
7020
7021
7022
7023
7024
7025
7026
7027
7028
7029
7030
7031
7032
7033
7034
7035
7036
7037
7038
7039
7040
7041
7042
7043
7044
7045
7046
7047
7048
7049
7050
7051
7052
7053
7054
7055
7056
7057
7058
7059
7060
7061
7062
7063
7064
7065
7066
7067
7068
7069
7070
7071
7072
7073
7074
7075
7076
7077
7078
7079
7080
7081
7082
7083
7084
7085
7086
7087
7088
7089
7090
7091
7092
7093
7094
7095
7096
7097
7098
7099
7100
7101
7102
7103
7104
7105
7106
7107
7108
7109
7110
7111
7112
7113
7114
7115
7116
7117
7118
7119
7120
7121
7122
7123
7124
7125
7126
7127
7128
7129
7130
7131
7132
7133
7134
7135
7136
7137
7138
7139
7140
7141
7142
7143
7144
7145
7146
7147
7148
7149
7150
7151
7152
7153
7154
7155
7156
7157
7158
7159
7160
7161
7162
7163
7164
7165
7166
7167
7168
7169
7170
7171
7172
7173
7174
7175
7176
7177
7178
7179
7180
7181
7182
7183
7184
7185
7186
7187
7188
7189
7190
7191
7192
7193
7194
7195
7196
7197
7198
7199
7200
7201
7202
7203
7204
7205
7206
7207
7208
7209
7210
7211
7212
7213
7214
7215
7216
7217
7218
7219
7220
7221
7222
7223
7224
7225
7226
7227
7228
7229
7230
7231
7232
7233
7234
7235
7236
7237
7238
7239
7240
7241
7242
7243
7244
7245
7246
7247
7248
7249
7250
7251
7252
7253
7254
7255
7256
7257
7258
7259
7260
7261
7262
7263
7264
7265
7266
7267
7268
7269
7270
7271
7272
7273
7274
7275
7276
7277
7278
7279
7280
7281
7282
7283
7284
7285
7286
7287
7288
7289
7290
7291
7292
7293
7294
7295
7296
7297
7298
7299
7300
7301
7302
7303
7304
7305
7306
7307
7308
7309
7310
7311
7312
7313
7314
7315
7316
7317
7318
7319
7320
7321
7322
7323
7324
7325
7326
7327
7328
7329
7330
7331
7332
7333
7334
7335
7336
7337
7338
7339
7340
7341
7342
7343
7344
7345
7346
7347
7348
7349
7350
7351
7352
7353
7354
7355
7356
7357
7358
7359
7360
7361
7362
7363
7364
7365
7366
7367
7368
7369
7370
7371
7372
7373
7374
7375
7376
7377
7378
7379
7380
7381
7382
7383
7384
7385
7386
7387
7388
7389
7390
7391
7392
7393
7394
7395
7396
7397
7398
7399
7400
7401
7402
7403
7404
7405
7406
7407
7408
7409
7410
7411
7412
7413
7414
7415
7416
7417
7418
7419
7420
7421
7422
7423
7424
7425
7426
7427
7428
7429
7430
7431
7432
7433
7434
7435
7436
7437
7438
7439
7440
7441
7442
7443
7444
7445
7446
7447
7448
7449
7450
7451
7452
7453
7454
7455
7456
7457
7458
7459
7460
7461
7462
7463
7464
7465
7466
7467
7468
7469
7470
7471
7472
7473
7474
7475
7476
7477
7478
7479
7480
7481
7482
7483
7484
7485
7486
7487
7488
7489
7490
7491
7492
7493
7494
7495
7496
7497
7498
7499
7500
7501
7502
7503
7504
7505
7506
7507
7508
7509
7510
7511
7512
7513
7514
7515
7516
7517
7518
7519
7520
7521
7522
7523
7524
7525
7526
7527
7528
7529
7530
7531
7532
7533
7534
7535
7536
7537
7538
7539
7540
7541
7542
7543
7544
7545
7546
7547
7548
7549
7550
7551
7552
7553
7554
7555
7556
7557
7558
7559
7560
7561
7562
7563
7564
7565
7566
7567
7568
7569
7570
7571
7572
7573
7574
7575
7576
7577
7578
7579
7580
7581
7582
7583
7584
7585
7586
7587
7588
7589
7590
7591
7592
7593
7594
7595
7596
7597
7598
7599
7600
7601
7602
7603
7604
7605
7606
7607
7608
7609
7610
7611
7612
7613
7614
Project Gutenberg's The Happy Adventurers, by Lydia Miller Middleton

This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever.  You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
www.gutenberg.org.  If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.

Title: The Happy Adventurers

Author: Lydia Miller Middleton

Posting Date: October 31, 2014 [EBook #6901]
Release Date: November, 2004
First Posted: February 9, 2003

Language: English

Character set encoding: UTF-8

*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE HAPPY ADVENTURERS ***




Produced by Tiffany Vergon, Charles Franks, and the Online
Distributed Proofreading Team.










THE HAPPY ADVENTURERS

[Illustration: YOU CALLED ME, SO I CAME]

The Happy Adventurers

BY

LYDIA MILLER MIDDLETON



To Alastair and Margaret

"I tell this tale, which is strictly true, Just by way of convincing
you How very little, since things were made, Things have altered in the
building trade."--Kipling.



CONTENTS

CHAPTER

I.    HOW IT BEGAN II.   THE BUILDERS, OR THE LITTLE HOUSE III.  THE
FORTUNE-MAKERS, OR THE CHERRY-GARDEN IV.   THE TREASURE-HUNTERS, OR THE
DUKE'S NOSE V.    THE GOLD-DIGGERS, OR THE MIRACLE VI.   THE
GRAPE-GATHERERS, OR WHO WAS MR. SMITH? VII.  THE AERONAUTS, OR THE
FATEFUL STONE VIII. HOW IT ENDED

ILLUSTRATIONS

"YOU CALLED ME, SO I CAME"

"I WISH I COULD MAKE SOMETHING THAT WOULD REACH FROM HERE TO MY BROTHER"

GRIZZEL THREW IN A SMALL HANDFUL OF TEA

DICK STARTED VIOLENTLY

THEY STOOD AND WATCHED THE "KANGAROO" FOR SOME TIME

THERE THEY WERE-OH, HOW MOLLY LONGED TO KEEP THEM!



THE HAPPY ADVENTURERS

CHAPTER I

How it Began


"Dear, dear!" said Grannie, "woes cluster, as my mother used to say."

"Let us hope that this is the last woe, and that now the luck will
turn," said Aunt Mary.

Mollie did not say anything. She had smiled the Guides' smile valiantly
through the worst of her misfortunes, but now she was so tired that she
felt nothing short of a hammer and two tacks could fasten that smile on
to her face any longer. So she closed her eyes and lay back on the
cushions, feeling that Fate had done its worst and that no more blows
were possible in the immediate future.

Grannie fetched an eiderdown and tucked it cosily round the patient,
who looked pale and chilly even on this fine warm day in June, while
Aunt Mary tidied away the remains of lotions and bandages left by the
doctor.

"The best thing now will be a little sleep," said Grannie, looking down
with kind old eyes at her granddaughter, "a little quiet sleep and then
a nice tea, with the first strawberries from the garden. I saw quite a
number of red ones this morning, and Susan shall give us some cream."

Mollie opened her eyes again and tried to look pleased, but even the
thought of strawberries and cream could not make her feel really happy
in her heart; for one thing, she still felt rather sick.

"That will be lovely," she said, as gratefully as she could, "and now I
think I _will_ try to go to sleep, and perhaps forget things for a
little while--" and, in spite of all her efforts, a few tears insisted
upon rolling down her cheeks as she thought of home, and Mother's
disappointment, and the dull time that lay before her.

Mollie Gordon's home was in London, in the somewhat dull district of
North Kensington, where her father, Dr. Gordon, had a large but not
particularly lucrative practice, and her mother cheerfully made the
best of things from Monday morning till Sunday night. There were five
children: Mollie and her twin brother Dick; Jean, Billy, and Bob. They
lived in a large, ugly house, one of a long row of ugly houses in a
dull gardenless street, where the sidewalks were paved, and the plane
trees which bordered the road were stunted and dusty. In the near
neighbourhood ran a railway line, a car line, and four bus routes, so
that noise and dust were familiar elements in the Gordons' lives--so
familiar, indeed, that they passed unnoticed.

A month ago Mollie had been in the full swing of mid-term. Every moment
of her life had been taken up with lessons, games, and Guiding; the
days had been too short for all she wanted to get into them, and, if
she had been allowed, she would certainly have followed the poet's
advice to "steal a few hours from the night", but, fortunately for
herself, she had a sensible mother whose views did not coincide with
the poet's.

And then in the midst of all her busyness, just when she thought
herself quite indispensable to the school play, the hockey team, and
her Patrol, she fell ill with measles. She was not very ill, so far as
measles went, but her eyes remained obstinately weak, and so it was
decided that she should be sent down to the country to stay with
Grannie, do no lessons at all, and spend as much time as possible in
the open air. Luckily, or unluckily, according to the point of view,
none of the other children had caught the disease, so that Mollie went
alone to Chauncery, as Grannie's house in Sussex was called.

Chauncery was an old-fashioned house standing in a beautiful garden
surrounded by fields and woods. If Mollie could have had a companion of
her own age, she would have been perfectly happy there, in spite of
frustrated ambitions and the trial of not being allowed to read; but
the very word "measles" frightened away the neighbours, so that no one
came to keep her company, and she sometimes felt very lonely.
Nevertheless, she had accommodated herself to circumstances, and,
between playing golf with Aunt Mary, driving the fat pony, and learning
to milk the pretty Guernsey cows, she managed to "put in a very decent
time", as she expressed it. Till this third misfortune befell her.

"First measles, then eyes, and now a sprained ankle," she sighed to
Aunt Mary on the morning after her accident; "what _can_ I do to pass
the time? It's all very well for Baden-Powell to talk, but I can't sing
and laugh all day for a week; it would drive you crazy if I did. I have
smiled till my mouth aches. What shall I do next?"

"You poor chicken!" Aunt Mary exclaimed, with the most comforting
sympathy. "You have had a run of bad luck and no mistake! We must
invent something. You can't read and you can't sew--how about knitting?
Suppose we knit a scarf in school colours for Dick, or a jumper for
yourself to wear when you are better? I could get wool in the village.
That would do to begin with, till I think of something better."

Mollie agreed that it certainly would be better than doing nothing,
though hardly an exciting occupation for an active girl of thirteen. So
the scarf was set agoing, whilst Grannie read aloud, and the first half
of the first day was got through pretty well. But after lunch the day
darkened and rain began to fall in heavy slate-coloured streaks,
pouring down the window-panes and streaming across the greenhouse roof,
changing the bright daylight into a dismal twilight, and blotting out
all view of the garden. It was depressing weather even for people who
were quite well, and poor Mollie might be forgiven for finding it hard
to keep up her spirits. She was tired of knitting, tired of being read
aloud to, and tired of writing letters to her family.

"How would you like to see some photographs of your father when he was
little?" suggested Grannie at last. "He was the most beautiful infant I
ever saw." She opened a cupboard door as she spoke, and presently came
back to Mollie's side with an arm-load of photograph-albums, the kind
of albums to be found in country houses, filled with carte-de-visite
photographs of old-fashioned people, all standing, apparently, in the
same studio, and each resting one hand on the same marble pillar. The
ladies wore spreading crinoline skirts, and had hair brushed in smooth
bands on either side of their high foreheads; the men wore baggy
trousers and beards; family groups were large, and those boys and girls
taken separately looked altogether too good for this world.

Mollie smiled at the picture of her father, a fat, solemn baby in his
mother's arms. She thought, but did not say, that he was a remarkably
plain child, and congratulated herself that she took after her mother
in appearance; though, of course, Father, as she knew him, was not in
the least like that infant. At the rest of the photographs she looked
politely, but it was hard work to keep from yawning, and at last her
mouth suddenly opened of itself and gave a great gape.

"That's right," said Grannie, "now I'll tuck you up and lower the
blinds, and you'll have a nice little nap till tea-time."

Mollie closed her eyes and tried to sleep, but sleep would not come.
She missed her morning walk and the fresh air of out-of-doors, so she
gave it up, opened her eyes again, and lay wakefully thinking of home
and Mother, Dick and Jean, and school. The big clock on the mantelpiece
seemed to go very, very slowly, its tick loud and deliberate, as though
it would say: "Don't think you are going to get off one single
minute--sixty minutes to the hour you have to live through, and there
are still two hours till tea-time." The rain splashed against the
window, the wind moaned through the tree-tops, and the room got
steadily darker.

"Oh dear!" Mollie whispered to herself, "what _can_ I do to make the
time pass?"

She sat up and looked round, and her eyes fell upon the last of the
photograph-albums--the one she had yawned over. She picked it up,
propped it on her knees, and, lying back against the cushions, turned
the pages over. These were all children, prim children with tidy hair
and solemn faces. Mollie stopped at the picture of a girl dressed in a
wide-skirted, sprigged-muslin frock. Her hair fell in plump curls from
beneath a broad-brimmed hat with long ribbons floating over one
shoulder. Her legs were very conspicuous in white stockings and funny
boots with tassels dangling on their fronts.

"I expect this is how Ellen Montgomery looked in _The Wide, Wide
World_," Mollie said to herself. "She would be rather pretty if she
were properly dressed; she looks about my age. I wonder what sort of
time she had--horribly dull, probably. No hockey, no Guiding, no
fox-trots--I expect she danced the polka, and recited 'Lives of great
men all remind us', and got pi-jawed ten times a day. I can't imagine
how children endured life in those days. Thank goodness I wasn't born
till 1907! She does look rather nice, though--and oh! I wish you could
talk, my dear! I _am_ dull."

Just then Aunt Mary began to play the piano in the next room. She
played soft, old-fashioned tunes, so that her niece might be soothed to
sleep. Mollie did not recognize the tunes but she liked them; they
seemed to sympathize with her as she continued to look at the prim
little girl in the photograph.

"Perhaps she played those very tunes; she looks as if she practised for
one hour a day _regularly_."

As Mollie lay there, the sweet old music sounding in her ears and her
eyes steadily fixed on the face of that other child of long ago, it
seemed to her that the child smiled at her.

"I am getting sleepy," she said to herself, and shut her eyes. But she
did not feel sleepy and soon opened them again. This time there was no
mistake about it--the child in the photograph _was_ smiling, first with
her solemn eyes, and then with her prim little mouth. Mollie was so
startled that she let the album slip from her lap, and it fell down
between the sofa and the wall. She turned round, and, after groping in
the narrow space for a minute, she succeeded in getting hold of the
album again and pulled it up. As she raised her head and sat up, she
saw, standing beside her sofa, as large as life, the prim little
girl--wide skirts, white stockings, tasselled boots, and all.

As Mollie stared "with all her eyes" as people say, the little girl
smiled at her again, and she noticed that, although the child's dress
was so very old-fashioned, her smile was quite a To-day smile, so to
speak.

"Good gracious!" exclaimed Mollie, "who are you?"

"I am a Time-traveller," the child answered, speaking in a peculiarly
soft voice. "You called me, so I came."

"What on earth is a Time-traveller?" asked Mollie, rather surprised to
find that she did not feel in the least alarmed at this sudden
apparition.

"A person who travels in Time," the child replied. "I am one, and you
are one, but everybody isn't one. I can't explain, so you'd better not
waste time asking questions if you want to travel. I can't wait here
long."

"But--" said Mollie, looking bewildered, as well she might. "Travel
where? Of course I'd love to come, but how can I with a crocked-up
ankle; and what would Grannie say?"

"Those things don't matter to Time-travellers," said the other child.
"We travel about in Time. You haven't got to think about what is
happening here and now--that will be all right. But you have to make a
vow before you begin Time-travelling. Do you know what a vow is?"

"Of course I do," Mollie replied; "I'm a Girl Guide."

"I don't know what a Girl Guide is," said the other girl, wrinkling up
her pretty forehead, "but a Time-traveller has to vow on her faith and
honour never to say one single word about her adventures to any
grown-up, either here or there. You must not ask them questions that
will make them wonder things, however much you want to, because they
don't understand, and would be almost sure to interfere. Will you vow?"

"Yes, I will, but you must give me one moment to think. Where shall I
travel to and how long shall I stay?"

"You come along with me to my Time; I don't know how long you will
stay. A year of our Time might be a minute of yours, or a minute of
ours might be a year of yours, but you will be all right. Have you ever
seen a dissolving view?"

"That's a magic lantern, isn't it? Yes, Dick once had one. I think they
are rather dull."

"Oh no, not if they are properly done. Hugh--" she stopped and then
began again. "You will step into a dissolving view of our Time. It just
begins and ends anyhow, and you go out of it again."

"But it's so _queer_," Mollie said doubtfully. "I never _heard_ of such
a thing. I must be dreaming."

The other child shook her head. "No, you're not," she said patiently.
She looked around the room as though in search of inspiration, and her
eyes fell upon a volume of Shakespeare which Aunt Mary had been
reading: "Do you learn Shakespeare at your school?" she asked.

"Rather," Mollie answered, in a slightly superior voice; "I have acted
in six plays."

"Ah--then you remember what Hamlet says: 'There are more things in
Heaven and earth, Horatio, than are dreamt of in your philosophy'."

"We haven't done _Hamlet_ yet," Mollie answered, in a less superior
tone, "I don't think I quite understand what that means."

"Neither do I," said the child. "That's it, you see. Papa says--" she
stopped short again, and then went on. "It's nearly time for me to
go--and I can never come back if you don't come this time," moving away
a few steps as she spoke.

"Oh, don't go--don't go," Mollie cried. "I do want to come; it won't do
anyone any harm, will it?"

The child smiled very sweetly: "Not the least in the world. But
remember the vow. On your faith and honour."

"I vow, I vow--on my word of honour as a Guide. I can't say more than
that."

"Give me your hand, then. Listen to the music, and shut your eyes till
I tell you to open them."

Mollie closed her eyes. She had a queer swimmy feeling, as if she were
in a high swing and were just swooping down to the lowest point. All
the time Aunt Mary's tunes went on, but they seemed to go farther and
farther away.

"Open," said a soft voice.

       *       *       *       *       *

The darkened room had vanished, and the ticking clock; Aunt Mary's
tunes and the rain splashing on the window-panes; the sofa too, and the
prim child. And Mollie herself!

       *       *       *       *       *

She was standing in a sunny road, with one foot on a white painted
wooden gate, upon which she had evidently been swinging. The gate
opened into a large garden, and before her lay a broad path planted on
either side with tall, pointed cypress trees, their thin shadows lying
across the walk like black bars. Between the trees ran narrow
flower-beds, and beyond these stretched a wide, open space, so solidly
spread with yellow dandelions that it looked as though the golden floor
of heaven had come to rest upon earth. The path, with its sentinel
trees, led straight as a rod to a distant house, long and low,
surrounded by a vine-covered veranda. There were strange, sweet smells
in the air, which felt soft and warm. The sky was brilliantly blue, and
on the fence across the road a gorgeous parrot sat preening its
feathers in the sunshine.

Mollie looked about her with curious eyes, wondering where she was. Not
in England, of that she was sure--there was a different feel in the
air, colours were brighter, scents were stronger, and that radiant
parrot would never perch itself so tranquilly upon an English fence.

Then she saw, coming down the path, a girl of about her own age,
dressed in a brown-holland overall trimmed with red braid, high to the
throat, and belted round the waist. She wore no hat, and her hair fell
over her shoulders in plump brown curls. By her side paced a large dog,
a rough-haired black-and-white collie with sagacious brown eyes. He
leapt forward with a short bark, but the girl laid a restraining hand
on his back:

"Down, Laddie, down," she said, "don't you know a friend when you see
one? Come in, Mollie."

And suddenly Mollie knew where she was. This was Adelaide, in
Australia; that was the child in the photograph, whose name, she knew,
was Prudence Campbell; and they were living in the year 1878.




CHAPTER II

The Builders or The Little House


Mollie left the white gate, which swung behind her with a sharp click,
and walked up the path towards Prudence. Laddie circled round with a
few inquiring sniffs, decided that the newcomer was harmless, and stood
blinking his eyes in the sunlight, his bushy tail waving slowly from
side to side. Prudence slid an arm through Mollie's.

"I'm so glad you've come," she said. "Hugh's little house is all but
finished, and he promised to let us up to-day. Let's go and sit beside
Grizzel till he calls."

Mollie's eyes followed the turn of Prue's head, and she saw a younger
child seated upon the golden floor beyond the flower-beds. This child
wore an overall of bright blue cotton, shaped like Prue's, and her head
was covered with short red curls, which shone in the sun like burnished
copper. Prudence frowned a little as she looked at her sister:

"How Grizzel can sit in the middle of that yellow, dressed in that
blue, with that red hair, I can't think," she said. "She calls herself
an artist, but it simply puts my teeth on edge. Did you ever see
anything so ugly?"

"Ugly!" Mollie repeated in surprise. "I think it is beautiful, just
like a picture in _Colour_. What is she doing?"

The child looked up at that moment and smiled at them. "Hullo, Mollie,"
she said in a friendly tone, as if she were quite well acquainted with
the new arrival, "come and see my dandelion-chain; it's nearly done."

Prudence jumped the flower-bed, followed by Mollie and the dog, and all
three made their way through the thickly growing dandelions, and seated
themselves beside Grizzel. She had filled her lap with dandelions, and
was busily occupied in linking them together as English children link a
daisy-chain.

"What are you doing?" Mollie asked again, as her eyes followed
Grizzel's chain, and she observed that it stretched far away out of
sight among the trees and bushes.

"I am laying a chain right round the garden," Grizzel replied. "When it
is finished it will be the longest dandelion-chain in the world."

"What are you going to do with it?" asked Mollie.

"Nothing," answered Grizzel.

"Then what's the good of making it?" asked Mollie.

"It isn't meant to be any good," answered Grizzel, "it's only meant to
be the longest dandelion-chain in the world."

"But there's nothing beautiful about longness," persisted Mollie. "You
wouldn't like to have the longest nose in the world."

"It would be rather nice," said Grizzel, working as steadily as the
Princess in Hans Andersen's tale of the "White Swans", "then I could
smell all the delicious smells there are. Mamma says a primrose-patch
in an English wood is delicious."

"Don't waste your breath trying to make Grizzel change her mind,"
Prudence interposed. "Papa says you might as well explain to a pigling
which way you want it to go. Let's help with her chain and get it
finished. I'm tired of it." She threw a handful of yellow bloom into
Mollie's lap as she spoke, and began herself to link some stalks
together in a somewhat dreamy and lazy fashion. Mollie followed her
example more briskly.

"It's a pity, you know," she said to Grizzel, "to leave the poor little
flowers withering all round the garden when they might have gone on
growing for days. They will soon be faded and forgotten."

"I'd rather fade in the longest chain in the world than be one of a
million dandelions growing on their roots," Grizzel said, pulling a
fresh handful and shifting her chain to make room for them.

Mollie shook her head but did not argue any more. She dropped her chain
and looked round the garden. Although the sun was so warm and bright
the flowers were those which grow in springtime in England. Daffodils,
narcissus, freesias, and violets grew thickly in the borders and under
the trees, which seemed to be mostly fruit-trees, though Mollie did not
recognize them all. Peach and apricot were in bloom; fig trees and
mulberry trees spread out their broad leaves; and an immense vividly
scarlet geranium dazzled even Mollie's modern eyes. It was a funny
mixture of seasons, she thought.

Suddenly Prudence jumped to her feet, letting all her dandelions drop
unheeded. "There's Hugh!" she exclaimed; "he is calling us. The house
must be finished. Come on, Grizzel, leave your old chain--come on,
Mollie."

Grizzel shook her head and set all the red curls bobbing; "I must
finish my chain first. You go. I won't be long."

Prudence and Mollie jumped the flower-beds again, Laddie, who had
fallen comfortably asleep among the dandelions, deciding after a few
lazy blinks to stay where he was. A slender boy in grey was waiting for
them in the veranda. He was like Prue, but fairer, and his eyes were
peculiarly clear and thoughtful.

"Come on," he said, "I'm ready for the furnishings now. What I want is:
first, a carpet; second, curtains; and third--third--a tin-opener; but
there is no great hurry for that. Where can I get a carpet?"

"Schoolroom hearthrug," Prudence suggested promptly. "No one will
notice, and it's pretty shabby since I dropped the red-hot poker and
you spilt the treacle-toffee."

"And the curtains?"

"You can have the striped blanket off my bed," said Prue, after a
moment's consideration, "we can cut it in halves."

"Good gracious!" exclaimed Mollie. "Cut a blanket in halves! What will
your mother say to that?"

"Mamma won't know," Prudence replied calmly. "She never looks at my
bed, and, if she did, she would forget it had ever had a striped
blanket on it. Come on, Mollie, we'll get the things and smuggle them
across while no one is looking."

Mollie felt shocked for a minute. Doing things behind backs was all
against Guide Law, and at home she would almost as soon think of
chopping up her own feet as of cutting up Mother's blankets to play
with. But, she reflected, different times have different ways; there
was no Guide Law in 1878, and perhaps Prue's mother was very extra
strict, in which case "all's fair in love and war", so she followed
Prue into the house. It was, to her eyes, an unusual sort of house, all
built on the ground floor, so that there was no staircase. The front
door opened into a square hall with doors on all sides. Prue pushed one
open and they passed through into a bedroom, very plainly furnished
with two little beds, two chests of drawers, a wash-stand, and a chair.
They pulled the white cover off one bed and hauled away a blanket,
cheerfully striped in scarlet, purple, yellow, and green, with a few
black and white lines thrown in here and there. Mollie thought it would
be rather a difficult blanket to forget about. Prue replaced the white
cover, spreading it smoothly and neatly, rolled up the blanket, and
made for the door again.

Hugh had disappeared. They walked down the veranda, passing several
open French windows through which Mollie caught a glimpse of
sitting-rooms, and crossed a paved courtyard, at the farther side of
which was a red brick house with a wooden porch in front of it.

"The schoolroom is here," Prudence explained, "because Mamma doesn't
like noise. It's a very good plan for us; we can do lots of things we
couldn't do if we were in the house. Miss Wilton is our governess; she
has gone home to-day to nurse a sister with bronchitis. I'm sorry for
the sister, but it's a treat for us, especially as Hugh has got a
half-holiday. Mamma is out, Bridget has taken Baby for a walk, and Mary
is talking to her sweetheart across the fence, so we'll get the
hearthrug without any questions."

As she talked, Prudence led the way into the schoolroom. It was plainly
furnished and not very tidy, but it had a homely look--in fact it
reminded Mollie of the nursery in North Kensington, so that, for one
very brief moment, she almost felt homesick. But Prudence gave her
little time to indulge in this luxurious sensation (because having a
home nice enough to be sick for is a luxury in its way), and Mollie had
merely taken in a general impression of books, toys, and shabbiness,
when Prudence called her to help with the hearthrug. It certainly was
shabby and by no means added to the beauty of the room. They rolled it
up with the blanket inside, and, carrying it between them, they left
the schoolroom, crossed the courtyard again, scrambled over a low stone
wall, and arrived at the foot of a tall tree.

It was a very large tree. Its trunk, grey, smooth, and absolutely
straight, rose from the ground for fourteen feet without a branch or
foothold of any description. At that height its thick boughs spread out
in a broad and even circumference, and across two of these boughs was
built a hut, perhaps five by seven feet in area, and high enough for a
child of ten to stand upright in. It had a floor, four walls, and a
roof, an opening for a door, and three smaller openings for windows. At
the door sat Hugh, waiting for the girls and their bundle. When they
came to a standstill below him he let down a rope.

"Tie the things on and I'll haul them up," he ordered; "and then you
two climb up and give me a hand. Better send Mollie up first, as the
ladder is a bit shaky till you know it, and Prue can hang on to it
below."

Mollie noticed then that a narrow green ladder leant up against the
smooth trunk; it looked as if an unwary step would send it flying, and
she put a reluctant foot on the lowest rung. The ground below was hard
and stony, most uninviting for a fall.

"You are quite safe so long as you push and don't pull," Prudence
assured her. "I am holding on here, and the ladder is firmer than it
looks."

Mollie mounted with gingerly tread, but reached the top safely and
crawled into the hut through the little door. She was quickly followed
by Prudence, and the two girls examined the interior with interest.
There was not very much room; two could sit down with comfort, three
would be slightly crowded, and four would be a tight fit but not
impossible.

"You won't be able to lay the carpet with all of us inside," said
Mollie, as she felt the big roll at her back.

"One of you had better stay out," said Hugh. "There are seats all over
the tree."

Mollie put her head out at the door and looked up into the branches.
They were very much forked, and upon every difficult branch Hugh had
nailed steps and made a railing. In some of the forks he had inserted
wooden seats, others he had left to nature. The topmost seat was almost
at the summit of the tree, and behind it was firmly lashed a flagpole,
with a Union Jack hanging limply in the still air, and a lantern with
green and red glass on two of its sides. Near the door of the little
house there hung from a stout branch a curious-looking canvas bag,
broadly tubular in shape, and with a small brass tap at the lower end.
The tree was thickly foliaged, but the leaves were delicate and lacy,
and, though they formed an admirable screen for the climbers, a good
view of the surrounding country was to be obtained between them, and
even through them in some places. Mollie decided to climb to the top
and look about.

"That's our look-out," Hugh explained. "We can see the enemy from there
a long time before the enemy can see us."

"'O Pip', is what _we_ call it," said Mollie. "Who is the enemy?"

"It all depends," Hugh replied evasively. "Now, Prue, look alive."

Mollie was a level-headed climber when she had something reasonably
solid beneath her feet; no one unfamiliar with the vagaries of the
green ladder could be expected to climb it with enthusiasm. She crawled
out of the house by the little door again, found her road to the
nearest staircase, and climbed this way and that among the leafy
branches till she reached the Look-out. There she settled herself
comfortably and examined her surroundings near and far, whilst the
other two laid the carpet and tacked up the blanket, now cut into three
strips by Prudence.

"She looks as if she were hemming sheets for missionaries," Mollie said
to herself, as she watched Prudence doing execution on the blanket with
a large pair of scissors. "It would be almost impossible for any girl
to be as good as Prue looks; it's her eyelashes, and the way she does
her hair."

After admiring the well-planned architecture of the tree Mollie turned
her attention to the scenery. At her feet lay the garden with the long,
vine-wreathed house and the red schoolroom at one side. It was a large
garden, stretching far behind the house, and, as Mollie surveyed the
rows of almond trees which outlined its boundaries, she felt some
respect for Grizzel's perseverance. "If she has laid a chain right
round that she knows how to stick to a thing," she thought, as she
caught sight of the little blue figure still sitting amongst the golden
dandelions. "It's a pity she doesn't do something more worth while. She
would make a good Guide." Looking beyond the garden, Mollie could see
the town of Adelaide. It was a white town among green trees, with many
slender spires and pointed steeples piercing the blue sky, many gardens
and meadows, and a silvery streak of river winding across it like a
twisted thread. A semicircle of softly swelling hills enclosed the town
upon two sides, some of them striped with vineyards, some wooded, and
some brilliantly yellow, for the dandelions seemed to be spread over
the country like a carpet. Mollie shook a wise head at such waste of
good land, for of what use are dandelions! In the far distance she
could see a straight white road leading from the town into the hills.
She thought she would like to follow that road and see what happened to
it in the end. "I had not the least idea," she murmured to herself,
"that Adelaide and Australia were like this; not the very least. There
must be a great deal of world outside England, when you come to think
of it. When I am grown-up--"

"Come down, Mollie," called Prue. "The house is beautiful now; come and
see it."

It certainly looked very snug, with the carpet, whose shabbiness was
not noticeable in the dim light, and the gaily striped curtains, which
had been tacked up and fastened back from the windows. They had added a
set of shelves made out of a box covered with American leather and
brass-headed nails. A few books lay upon one shelf, and on another
stood a collection of cups, saucers, and plates, cracked, perhaps, and
not all matching, but suggestive of convivial parties and good cheer.
In one corner lay a cushion embroidered in woolwork with magenta roses,
pea-green leaves, and orange-coloured daisies, all upon a background of
ultramarine blue. Mollie thought it gave an effective touch to the
somewhat scanty furnishing--in fact, it was the only furniture there
was, except the shelves.

"How perfectly _ripping_!" Mollie exclaimed enthusiastically. "If I had
this house I would live in it all the time. It is _much_ nicer than a
common house in a road. I do think Hugh is the cleverest boy I ever
met."

"This is nothing much," Hugh said modestly, "you should see my
raft--that _is_ worth seeing. I have invented a way of arranging corks
so that it will float in the severest storm. It could not sink if it
tried, unless, of course, it became waterlogged. But I can only work at
that when we are down at Brighton."

"I wish my brother Dick could be a Time-traveller and come here,"
sighed Mollie. "He would adore this tree, and the raft too."

"How old is Dick?" Hugh asked with interest.

"He is my twin; we are thirteen and a half," answered Mollie, quite
forgetting that in the year 1878 Dick was still minus twenty-nine. "We
do everything together in the holidays except football, and just now
there isn't any football, so Dick is rather bored at school. In
term-time we hardly see each other at all, we are both so horribly
busy. How do you find time to do all these things?"

"I don't find it, I steal it," Hugh answered. "If I waited to _find_
time I should never have enough to be useful. To-day is a half-holiday,
and I am supposed to be learning Roman history and writing out five
hundred lines. But I'm not," he added unnecessarily.

"Building is much more important than Roman history," said Mollie
decidedly, "and lines are absolutely rotten. I wonder why--"

"Hullo!" came a voice from below. "It's me. I have finished my chain at
last, and now I want to come up. Please come and hold the ladder, Prue."

Prudence crept out, tripped lightly down the ladder, and stood beside
her sister.

"Hold tight, Grizzel, and do remember to push and not pull; if you pull
I can't hold the ladder up."

"I wish Hugh would cut steps in the tree-trunk like the blacks,"
Grizzel complained, as she proceeded rather nervously to climb the
ladder. "I do hate this old tobbely old green old thing."

"I am going to make a rope-ladder and pull it up after me," Hugh said,
watching her from the door of his castle in the air. "I don't want
steps that everybody could climb. Look out, Griz, you are pulling--" he
stretched out a hand as he spoke, and held the top of the ladder, while
Prudence steadied it at the bottom, until Grizzel had safely negotiated
"the green passage", as Hugh called it, and crawled in at his little
front door.

"It is very, very, very, very nice," she said approvingly, "and it will
make a lovely place to come and hate in when everybody is horrid. You
can draw the curtains and shut the door, and light your lantern and sit
here hating as long as you like, for no one can get up when you have
your rope-ladder."

"It would be rather stuffy," Mollie said, looking at the thick blanket
curtains. "If he went on hating very long he would be suffocated. I'd
sooner have a tea-party myself, and pull all the tea up in baskets. The
water would be the hard part."

"The water is in that canvas bag," Hugh pointed out; "Papa gave it to
me; it's the boiling that bothers me, because I don't much like using a
spirit-lamp in here."

"Get an old biscuit-tin and fasten it up in the tree and put your
spirit-lamp in that," suggested Mollie the Guide. "Cut out the front;
then you will have a nice little cave all safe and sheltered."

"That's a jolly good idea," said Hugh; "I'll do it to-morrow and we'll
have a party."

A bell in the distance warned the children that it was time to go in
and tidy up for tea. Grizzel, however, was far too much enthralled by
the little house to want to come down so soon. "I don't want any
bread-and-butter tea," she announced; "bring me three oranges and
eleven biscuits, and the _Swiss Family Robinson_, and let me stay up
here."

Tea was laid in the dining-room, where they found Baby already seated
in her high chair. She was a very pretty baby, with large dark eyes,
silky golden hair, and a dear little mouth parting over two rows of
tiny pearly teeth. She gurgled melodiously to her family in the
intervals of dropping bits of jammy bread into her mug of milk, and
watching them bob about with absorbed interest.

"Good old Mary! She's made potato scones _and_ almond gingerbread."
Hugh remarked approvingly. "If you've never tasted real Irish potato
scones baked on a girdle, Mollie, you'd better chalk it up, as Bridget
says. You split them in two, pop in a lump of butter, shut them up, and
eat them. Too soon they are but a sweet dream of the past."

"They'll soon be a horrid dream of the future if you gobble them like
that," Prudence said warningly, "and you've forgotten Grizzel's
oranges; go and pull three fresh ones, and we'd better send her ginger
cake."

The gingerbread was baked in thin oblong squares frosted with white
sugar, each child's name being written on its own cake in pink letters.
They were most fascinating, and Mollie was charmed to see one with her
own name on it. The delightful part about this most unexpected visit,
she thought, was the way everyone had apparently expected her. She
could not help wondering how the invitation had been sent, but decided
that it was better not to ask too many questions.

Hugh departed with Grizzel's oranges, biscuits, and gingerbread,
elegantly arranged in a green-rush basket, the _Swiss Family Robinson_
forming the basis of the repast. He returned with a smile upon his face
which disclosed two most engaging dimples.

"I've sneaked the ladder," he said. "Won't Frizzy Grizzy be pleased
when she finds out! Ha ha! More scones, please."

"She won't mind," Prudence answered placidly, "she knows someone will
have to let her down before Mamma comes in. You've had enough jam, Baby
darling; let Prudence take off your bib now and wash your handy-pandys.
You can have half my gingerbread if you like, Hugh--hullo, there's
Papa!"

There was a sharp double knock at the front door, followed by the sound
of someone entering. Prudence set Baby on her feet and bolted
helter-skelter across the square hall, flinging herself into the arms
of a stout man with a brown beard, who returned her embrace so warmly
that Mollie wondered if he had been away from home for some time. He
removed his tall silk hat, showing a head as thickly covered with curls
as Grizzel's, but the hair was dark and slightly touched with grey.

"Well, my chick-a-biddies," he said, in a delightfully genial voice,
beaming upon them all with the kindest blue eyes Mollie had ever seen,
"and what has everybody been doing? And where is Grizzel?"

As he spoke he lifted Baby into his arms, ignoring the jammy little
fingers, laid a hand on Mollie's head, and looked round inquiringly for
his missing daughter.

"She's in my Nest," Hugh replied, "it's finished. Come and see it. You
can't climb into it yet, but it looks very nice from the outside. I
think I'll arrange a box to pull you and Mamma up in. The zinc-lined
box the piano came in would do."

"Thank you, my son," said Papa kindly, "thank you, thank you. At the
moment I am rather pressed for time. I have to meet Mamma at Mrs.
Taylor's at half-past five, and we are going to the town-hall to hear
this wonderful new telephone, as they call it. They say that someone
speaking from the post office at Glenelg will be perfectly audible in
the town-hall here, a distance of six and a half miles. It sounds
almost incredible. What will they discover next! Truly this is an
amazing age, and you children may live to see men flying yet."

Hugh had left his gingerbread, which lay forgotten on his plate, and
stood before his father flushed with excitement:

"Take me with you, _do_, Papa," he cried. "I'll learn reams of Latin
and get up at four o'clock and--"

"Well, get your hat and be quick then," Papa interrupted indulgently.
"Prue, my pet, look in my bag and you will find five parcels, one for
each young robber. Be fair and amiable, my children. Come, Hugh. Good
night, Papa's little angel." He kissed Baby, handed her over to
Prudence, put on his hat again, and was off down the wide path between
the cypress trees with Hugh hanging on his arm, in less than no time.

"Let's watch from the gate," said Prudence. "Bridget will take Baby.
Hurry up, Mollie."

They reached the foot of the garden just in time to see Papa's tall hat
disappear round the corner of the road. It was a lovely evening, and
the girls lingered by the gate; the scent of violets and freesias rose
from the flowerbed at their feet, and every now and again came a whiff
of something else--something exquisitely fragrant and delicate.

"What's that?" asked Mollie, with an unladylike sniff; "that lovely
smell?"

"It's wattle," Prudence answered. "It's in the fields over there. You
can smell it for miles sometimes, in the country; it's a nice smell.
Let's go and look at Papa's parcels. He went to see Mrs. Macfarline at
her toyshop to-day, and when he goes there he always brings something
home. It's a beautiful shop. Once I stayed with Lucy Macfarline from
Saturday till Monday, and her mamma allowed us to play in the shop on
Sunday; it was so funny, all dark and dim, and the dolls looking like
little ghosts. We played with the toys on the shelves and had a lovely
time. I love shops--oh, Mollie, we have forgotten Grizzel! She is up in
the tree all this time! We must run and get her down. I hope Hugh
hasn't hidden the ladder--I wish he wouldn't tease so."

"All brothers do," Mollie said philosophically. "Dick is simply the
limit sometimes, but I do wish we could get him over here, Prudence. Do
you think we could?"

"I'll think. But first we must find that ladder."

As they neared the tree Prudence called to her sister that they were
coming, but got no answer. They jumped the low wall and stood
underneath the tree, nearly dislocating their necks in their efforts to
see some sign of life in the little house. But Grizzel neither answered
nor showed herself, in spite of Prue's eloquent description of Papa's
parcels and denunciations of their brother.

"Perhaps she is having her evening hate," suggested Mollie.

"She does take awful fits of the sulks sometimes," Prudence allowed,
"but I don't think she would be sulky with _me_ just now; it wasn't me
that stole the ladder--oh _bother_ that Hugh! We had better go and look
for it as fast as we can. I wonder where he has hidden it?"

"It can't be far away, because he was only gone for a few minutes at
tea-time," Mollie remarked sensibly. "Very likely it is simply lying on
the ground behind the wall."

That was precisely where it was, and without much trouble the girls got
it into place again, and Prudence mounted quickly. She disappeared
through the little door, but in one moment appeared again with a
frightened face.

"She's not here, Mollie. She's gone."

"Gone!" Mollie exclaimed incredulously. "She can't be gone! How could
she get down without the ladder? She must be up in the tree."

"No, she isn't. I can see every branch from here; there is not a single
place where she could hide."

"But she _must_ be up there somewhere," Mollie persisted. "If she had
fallen out she would be lying round somewhere. There is no way she
_could_ get down without the ladder. She is so nervous. I'll come up
too and look."

"You may come, but you won't see anything," Prudence said, steadying
her end of the ladder while Mollie climbed.

The Nest was certainly empty. The little blue bird must have found
wings and flown, Mollie thought. She looked up and down and round
about, but not a vestige of Grizzel was there to be seen. Then she
called her Scouting lore to her aid, and set her wits to work.

"The basket has gone too, and there is no orange peel anywhere, but the
_Swiss Family Robinson_ is there on the book-shelf. So she did not go
in a great hurry, because she tidied up first. Let us go to the
Look-out and see if we can catch sight of her blue frock. She may be
hiding quite near and laughing at us all the time."

They climbed to the Look-out and anxiously scanned all the visible
parts of the garden, but nowhere was there a morsel of blue pinafore or
red curls to be seen.

"We had better get down," Prudence said, "and search the garden
properly; I'll ask Bridget to come and help us. What I can't understand
is how she got down at all, and, if she _was_ down, why she didn't come
to meet Papa. She always meets him; always, always. Whoever doesn't
meet him Grizzel always does."

Bridget laughed at their fears, but under her laugh Mollie could detect
a tone of anxiety, and when house and garden had been searched in vain,
Bridget and Prudence faced each other in silence. Then Prue spoke out
the fear which Mollie had not understood:

"The blacks have come to town; I saw their wurlies yesterday when we
left the Gardens."

"Away wid ye, Miss Prudence," Bridget scoffed. "An' what for wud the
blacks be touchin' Grizzel? Isn't yur Pa the kindest gintleman in the
whole wurrld to thim, dirrty things they be!"

"Old Sammy was angry because Mamma would not give him a new blanket
last time he came," Prudence answered, her face pale with anxiety and
tears not far away. "He just goes and sells them, that's what he does,
and buys whisky. He followed me all down the road one day when I was
alone, and jabbered away till his wife came and hauled him off."

There was a troubled silence while Bridget and Prue considered the next
step to take. Mollie felt that this problem was beyond her powers of
solving. Then a sudden thought struck her:

"Where's Laddie? We haven't seen him either."

"Praise be!" exclaimed Bridget. "The dog'll be wid Grizzel, an' that's
sure. Blessin's on ye for the thought, Miss Mollie, for it's scared I
was an' there's no use denyin'."

"Thank goodness! If the blacks had come Laddie would have barked,"
Prudence said, taking a long breath of relief. "How on earth did I not
miss him myself!"

"Your mind was so full of Grizzel you had no room for another thought,
but now--where is she, and how did she get down?"

"We _must_ find her before Mamma comes home. Mollie, you are clever;
think some more."

Mollie thought her hardest, but, as she explained, it was difficult to
make suggestions when she knew neither Grizzel nor the surroundings
very well. "She had no hat on; let us go and see if she has taken a
hat. Would she be likely to go out without one?"

No, they said, going out without a hat was unheard of. So a search was
instituted in the girl's room, and to their relief Grizzel's garden hat
was missing--somehow, even to Mollie, it seemed less alarming to be
missing with a hat than without one. In fact, if it had not been for
the mystery of the tree--which certainly _was_ very
inexplicable--Mollie would not have disturbed herself. Grizzel had gone
out, wearing her hat, carrying her basket, and accompanied by the large
and capable Laddie. Most likely she would come back presently with some
simple explanation to account for everything.

"I think she has gone for a walk. She got down somehow and ran off to
give Hugh a fright. Let's go and look for her along the road," was
Mollie's next proposal.

"If she has gone for a walk she will most likely come home by the lane,
unless she went over to the parklands--oh, I wish she would come back!
She never goes out alone in town, because she is frightened of meeting
Things. She says there are all sorts of Things in town. Once she got
lost in a big crowd, and I think it made her rather nervous. Besides,
Mamma will be angry if she is not home when they come in, and we'll get
such scoldings." Prudence sighed and looked longingly towards the white
gate, but there was no sign of the wanderer's return.

"Suppose we go to the Look-out and reconnoitre, and if we see her we
can go and meet her," said Mollie.

This seemed a good idea, so they climbed the ladder once more, and, one
behind the other, scrambled to the top of the tree. But twilight was
already creeping over the land--the brief Australian twilight which
turns to darkness so quickly. It was impossible to see any distance,
and the girls were turning their backs on the flagpole when Prudence
stopped with an exclamation:

"I think I will light the lantern. Grizzel will see it from a long way
off. Look in the house for matches, Mollie, while I turn the red
glasses both ways."

"But red means danger," Mollie objected, "and we aren't dangerous."

"Mamma is when we break rules," Prudence replied, "and it will remind
Grizzel to hurry up."

"Good gracious!" Mollie ejaculated, as she climbed down on her errand,
"I am glad we don't hang a red lantern out of the nursery window when
we see Mother coming along. How she would laugh if we did!"

"It won't burn long," Prue said, as she shut the lantern door, "but it
will do. Now we'll go down the lane; I am almost sure Grizzel will come
that way."

They crossed the garden and slipped into the lane through a narrow back
gate. It seemed to Mollie that the darkness fell like a curtain, so
quickly did it come dropping down. High up above the trees they could
see the red lantern shining in the dusk like a glowing ruby; the air
was growing chilly, and all the warm bright colours were fading into a
dull uniform grey, when suddenly out of the shadowy dimness there leapt
a dark form--a form with a bushy tail and a friendly bark.

"Laddie!" exclaimed Prudence, and a moment after Grizzel appeared,
running along and swinging her basket.

"Am I late?" she asked breathlessly. "I didn't mean to be so long; I
stopped to look at the shop windows."

"Oh, Grizzel, where _have_ you been?" Prue said, catching her sister by
the arm. "I have been so frightened. Come on quickly now, or we won't
be ready, and _then_ there will be a hullabuloo and goodness knows what
tomorrow."

They hurried back to the house, and were met by an anxious Bridget with
Baby in her arms. Bridget scolded, and Baby laughed, and they were all
so busy "getting ready" that it was not till three white muslin frocks
were spread primly over three green damask Victorian chairs that
Prudence found time to ask:

"How on earth did you get down from the tree?"

"I just got down," Grizzel answered, looking mysterious, "I invented a
secret way of getting down."

"Nonsense," Prudence said rather crossly; "there can't be a secret way
down."

"Well, find out for yourself," Grizzel retorted, her face taking on an
obstinate expression.

"But how _did_ you?" Mollie asked, with an ingratiating smile.

Grizzel shook her rebellious little red curls. "It's my secret," she
repeated; "I won't tell."

"When did you find out that the ladder was gone?" Prue asked, in a more
amiable voice.

"I just knew. It's part of the secret."

"You'll have to tell Hugh," Prudence said firmly; "you can't have
secret ways into other people's houses."

"I won't tell anyone. It's my mysterious secret and I shall keep it."

Prudence frowned and opened her mouth to speak again, but Mollie signed
to her to be silent. Mollie was not a Patrol Leader for nothing; she
had learned to be diplomatic, and now she turned the conversation:

"Where are those parcels?" she asked.

"The parcels! Goodness me, I forgot them! How _could_ I do such a
thing!" Prudence exclaimed, jumping up from the green chair and rushing
into the hall, followed by Mollie; Grizzel sat on in sulky dignity,
trying to look uninterested.

"Suppose Papa had come home and found we had not opened them, his
feelings would have been dreadfully hurt," Prudence said with
compunction. "It would have been murder outing. He always says murder
will out." Grizzel's dignity could not survive the sight of the
brown-paper packages, and the parcels were quickly undone and the
wrappings and string tidied away--"the evidences of our folly", Prue
said, as she bundled them out of sight. The contents were so charming
that everybody forgot their little difference of opinion. There was a
fine large kaleidoscope, the first she had ever seen, for Mollie; a
charming musical box, with a long list of tunes printed inside the lid
and a little gilt key to wind it up with, for Prudence; a Winsor and
Newton paint-box for Grizzel; _Five Weeks in a Balloon_, by Jules
Verne, for Hugh; and a Punchinello doll on a stick for Baby.

"I must say," Mollie remarked appreciatively, "your father _is_ a
peach. I have often wanted to see a proper kaleidoscope, but they seem
to have gone out of fashion."

The others were too busy admiring their own things to observe Mollie's
remarks. Grizzel was speechless with joy as she found all the paints
she had been longing for--the crimson lake, Prussian blue, Vandyke
brown, and the rest; Prue had wound up her box, and as Mollie turned
her kaleidoscope towards the light, and delighted herself with the
wonderful colours and designs it produced, she heard the delicate,
sweet tinkle of a faintly familiar tune--an old-fashioned sort of
tune....

While they were thus pleasantly occupied Professor and Mrs. Campbell
and Hugh returned, and Mollie was introduced to "Mamma" who after all
did not look in the least alarming. She was a fair, pretty woman, with
large clear eyes like Hugh's and a beautifully modulated voice. She
kissed Mollie and looked at her with rather a sad expression in her
eyes:

"You must tell me all about home this evening," she said in her musical
voice. "How nicely your hair is cut; I wonder if Prue's would look nice
like that."

"No, no," said Papa, laying his hand on Prue's curls, "I can't spare
one hair off my Prue's head. I must have my brown ringlets to play with
sometimes."

Hugh could talk of nothing but the wonderful telephone. "I believe I
could make one," he said later on. "I understood a good deal of what
the man said. I shall require a new magnet and some other things. I'll
begin tomorrow." He had forgotten all about such trifles as hidden
ladders and treed sisters, and the girls did not remind him.

But when Mollie found herself alone with Grizzel she began to talk
about the little house and described a beautiful plan she had concocted
for a house-warming, finishing up with the remark that it was a pity
that Grizzel could not come.

"Why can't I come?" demanded Grizzel. "Of course I'll come. I adore the
little house."

"It's Hugh's house, and I don't think he will let you come if you have
a mysterious secret way of getting up and down. He won't like it."

Grizzel was silent. "It's nothing very wonderful," she said at last. "I
was only paying Prudence out for forgetting me. She might have
remembered to let me down when Papa came home--" and Grizzel's eyes
filled with tears. Mollie's heart softened:

"He was in such a hurry that there was no time to get you, and it was
my fault afterwards just as much as Prue's."

"I'll tell you now if you like," Grizzel went on; "only you must
promise not to tell Prudence and Hugh."

"No," said Mollie, "I can't do that. Prudence was awfully frightened;
she got quite pale. We were frightened together and looked for you
together; it wouldn't be fair for you to tell me and not to tell her. I
hate things that are not fair."

Grizzel was silent again and then sighed. "Oh well, I suppose I'd
better tell. I'd have liked to keep one secret, but I can't bear not to
go to Hugh's party. It was very easy--I only--"

"Wait," said Mollie, "I'll call Prue."

[Illustration: I WISH I COULD MAKE SOMETHING THAT WOULD REACH FROM HERE
TO MY BROTHER]

"I saw Hugh take the ladder," Grizzel went on, after Prue joined them;
"of course I heard it scraping along; Hugh is a silly. So I watched him
hide it, and when the milkman came I called him, and he put it up and
helped me down and we hid it back again. That's all."

The others looked at each other, and then Mollie began to laugh, and
went on laughing till Prue and Grizzel laughed at her laughing. "Well,
I must say!" she exclaimed at last, "I _am_ a Sherlock Holmes and no
mistake! I was so busy being clever that I never even thought of a
milkman, which would have been Baden-Powell's first idea. Of all the
silly things! Why on earth didn't we think of it, Prue?"

Hugh, most reluctantly, went to school next morning, and Mamma kept the
girls busy with Italian, music, and needlework till lunch-time. After
that Grizzel departed with her paint-box, Bridget took Baby for a walk,
and Mollie and Prue settled themselves in the little house, with a
cushion apiece at their backs, a basket of freshly pulled oranges
between them, and a couple of books in case conversation should flag.

"Now, Prudence, tell me more about Time-travellers," Mollie said;
"somehow I can't seem to remember that I am one; in fact--" she paused.

"You can't believe it," Prudence finished for her. "I know. But it's
meant to be like that. If you didn't forget you would remember too
much, and then you would stop being a Time-traveller, because your mind
can't be in two places at once. So it is better _not_ to talk; or you
may have to go."

"I won't again, but just tell me two things. Can we travel forwards as
well as backwards?"

"A few people can, not everyone; but it is better not, Mollie. It is
far better not."

"But you came into my Time to fetch me."

"I didn't exactly come, you brought me; and I can only stay a moment."

"Well," Mollie said, after a short silence, "the other thing is: Can I
bring Dick? He would love this place and this Time--somehow you seem to
have more room than we have, and you are not so frightfully busy. We
never have _enough_ time; I think your hours must be longer than ours,"
she went on, with a sigh. "I simply cannot get all the things squeezed
in that I want to do. I often wish the days were thirty hours long."

"You weren't wishing that when I came," Prudence said, with a little
laugh. "I don't know about Dick; you can't bring him unless he wants to
come--of his own accord, I mean."

Mollie pondered a little, and then sighed again: "It will be rather
hard. He doesn't want anything frightfully except football, and there
isn't any just now. Perhaps we could make him want to come; couldn't
Hugh invent some way? It was only one chance in a hundred--in a
thousand, perhaps, that made me talk to your photograph. Let us ask
Hugh."

"We can ask," Prudence agreed, "but his head is going to be packed full
of telephone now, and he won't think or speak of anything else for
days. That's the way he is; we get rather tired of it sometimes,
especially when we have to help. Grizzel collected four hundred corks
for his raft. She grubbed in the ashpit, and among the empty
beer-bottles--" Prudence sighed in her turn.

The two girls met Hugh at the white gate on his return from school, and
Mollie seized the first opportunity to make her request.

"I don't know," Hugh answered thoughtfully; "there ought to be a way. I
believe there is a way _somewhere_ to do everything, if you can only
find it. It's mostly a question of looking long enough. And a thing is
always in the last place you look for it--naturally. I am going to make
a telephone; if I could make one long enough--" he paused.

They were strolling up the wide, cypress-bordered path as they talked,
and Mollie's wandering gaze fell upon a low mound at the foot of one of
the cypress trees.

"What's that?" she asked, coming to a standstill. "It looks like a
cat's grave."

It was a grave sure enough, and crowned with a bunch of pansies. A
small headstone had been made from the lid of an old soapbox, on which
was printed the following inscription:

          HERE LITH
             THE
           LONGEST
      DANDY LION CHANE
             IN
          THE WURLD

"It's Grizzel," said Prudence; "why on earth has she gone and buried
her beautiful chain?"

Grizzel joined the group and answered for herself:

"Mollie said the poor flowers would be forgotten. I should hate to be
forgotten, so I lifted them all up and buried them. I bought a yard of
lovely yellow muslin when I was out yesterday and made a beautiful
shroud. That cypress tree is rather big for such a little grave, but
it's the littlest in the garden."

No one smiled. "It was a wonderful chain," Mollie said, remembering her
view from the Look-out, "I wish I could make something that would reach
from here to my brother Dick. I wish we had wireless. I wonder if
'willing' would be any good. Have you ever played willing? We join
hands and will with all our might that Dick would come here."

"It sounds easy," said Hugh, always ready for a new experiment, "much
easier than making a telephone; we might as well try."

So they joined hands and wished. As they loosened hands again a shrill
cry above their heads made them all look up--it was a parrot flying low
across the garden, its brilliant plumage shining in the evening
sunlight like jewels. "It's my parrot!" Mollie exclaimed, "it met me by
the gate yesterday."

Mollie sat up. The rain was still splashing on the window-panes, but
Aunt Mary was drawing the curtains, and a cheerful little fire had been
lighted. There was a pleasant tinkle of china as tea-cups were settled
on the tray.

"Have I been asleep?" she asked incredulously. (It surely was not all a
_dream_!)

"A beautiful sleep," Aunt Mary answered; "and now tea, and after
tea--you shall see what you shall see."




CHAPTER III

The Fortune-makers or The Cherry-garden


Mollie was rather silent at tea-time. She could not help thinking of
those other children in that long-ago far-away garden. Were they real?
Or had it all been a dream? It _must_ have been a dream, she
thought--such things do not happen in real life--it was impossible that
it should have been true. And yet, never before had she dreamt anything
so clearly, so "going-on" as she expressed it to herself. She longed to
tell Aunt Mary all about it, but the memory of her vow restrained her.
If nothing further happened, in course of time she would feel free to
tell of her wonderful experience, but in the meantime she must have
patience. She racked her brains to think of some roundabout way of
introducing the subject of Australia and the year 1878, but could not
get past her vow--it seemed to block the way in every direction.

So she ate her little triangles of toast--made in a particularly
fascinating way peculiar to Grannie's housekeeping--without enjoying
the scrunch, scrunch between her teeth so much as usual. Even the early
strawberries and cream found her somewhat absent-minded.

But after tea was cleared away and the room tidied up, Aunt Mary
disappeared for a short time and returned with her hands behind her
back. She stood before Mollie, and in a solemn voice chanted the
following words:

  "Neevie neevie nick nack,
  Which hand will ye tak?
  Tak the right or tak the wrong,
  I'll beguile ye if I can."

This was too interesting to be ignored. Mollie sat up and became her
ordinary self again. She looked critically at Aunt Mary's arms,
shoulders, and eyes, but got no information from any of these. Then she
laughed:

"I _won't_ have the wrong, please, I'll have the right."

Aunt Mary laughed too. "You are too clever, Miss Mollie. That is not
the way _I_ did neevie-neevie when I was young." She brought her right
hand round as she spoke, and in it was a charming box, large,
varnished, and clamped at the corners with brass. She laid it on
Mollie's lap, and watched the sliding lid being pulled out by a pair of
impatient hands. It was a beautiful jig-saw puzzle.

"Oh, where _did_ you get it?" Mollie cried joyfully. "I _adore_ jig-saw
puzzles. You are a lovely, lovely aunt!" and she held out her arms for
a hug and a kiss.

"Well," said Aunt Mary, smiling with pleasure at the success of her
surprise, "I remembered how fond you are of jig-saws, so yesterday, as
soon as you had fallen asleep, I wired to Hamley's. I was not sure if
it would arrive to-day, so I did not tell you. Now, let us see what it
is--a map! Oh, dear me, I hope you won't find a map dull!"

Grannie, who loved jig-saws almost as much as Mollie did, had drawn up
a substantial table to the sofa and seated herself beside it. "Dull!"
she said reprovingly, "I hope not indeed. Maps are the most interesting
puzzles one can have. What is it a map of?"

"We'll soon find that out," said Mollie, laying a very jagged section
upon the table and studying it with interest. "What funny names--Weeah!
Where's that? It sounds like China."

Grannie had also possessed herself of a section, and was scrutinizing
it through her spectacles. "I'll need my reading-glass, Mary, my dear,"
she said; "my old eyes cannot see this tiny print."

A silver-handled reading-glass was brought, and Grannie considered her
section again: "The Yarra," she read out, "I wonder if you can tell me
where the Yarra is, Mollie?"

"Never heard of it," said Mollie, shaking her head. "Yankalilla.
Where's that? Goomooroo, Wanrearah, Koolywurtie. _What_ names! I am
glad I am not a railway guard in this place, wherever it may be."

"Aha, Miss Mollie, I am cleverer than you are with all your Oxford and
Cambridge examinations!" Grannie exclaimed triumphantly, "for I can
tell you where the Yarra is--it is the river upon which Melbourne is
built, and Melbourne is the capital of Victoria, and Victoria is a
colony in Australia."

"Australia!" Mollie exclaimed, a little startled. "How funny--I mean
how interesting!" It was certainly rather odd, she thought, that her
difficulty should be solved so promptly, for now, of course, she might
ask as many questions as she pleased and no one would wonder at her
sudden interest in our distant colonies. In the meantime Grannie and
Aunt Mary were both too much engrossed in the puzzle to notice the
rather peculiar expression on Mollie's face, and soon she too became
absorbed in the puzzle under her eyes, and forgot for the moment the
stranger puzzle in her mind.

When Mollie's breakfast-tray came up next morning, the first thing she
saw on it was a letter from Dick. She seized it and tore it open.


"DEAR MOLL,

"I've had the rummest experience you ever. Young Outram says it was
-pyh- -psy- -pysh---ghosts, you know. He says I must tell you _exactly_
what happened and not leave out anything, because quite small things
might turn out to be most important. Young Outram is great on ghosts
and Spirits, he says it is because he was born in the East. It happened
like this. Y.O. and me were sitting together at our desk, which is at
the back beside the window. It is a very good desk. Old Nosey was
talking about _Macbeth_--or perhaps it was _Paradise Lost,_ I am not
sure of this point, because sometimes he does one and sometimes the
other, according to the mood he is in. But it was one of them. Y.O. and
I were making a list of Probable Players in next term's 1st XV, and we
both said 'Jenkyns will have left', at the same time, so we hooked
little fingers and said Kipling, and were wishing a wish when all of a
sudden, _without the slightest warning_ there appeared, sitting on _our
desk,_ the most absolutely top-hole parrot I ever saw in my life. We
sat staring, because, you see, we never saw the beast fly in, and if it
flew through the window we _must_ have seen it, because of my arm being
on the window-sill. While we were still staring I _distinctly_ heard
your voice say, 'Do come here, Dick.' Just those words and then no
more. Then the parrot vanished absolutely, tail and everything, though
it was the finest parrot's tail I ever saw in my life. I can tell you,
Moll, it made me sit up hearing you like that. Y.O. said my freckles
came out like a rash because I got almost pale under them. I wish I'd
seen myself. Then we made the astonishing discovery that none of the
other chaps had seen the parrot, in fact they say it is a cock-and-bull
story, but we are sitting tight because of the phyc-thingummy. Young O.
says that whatever it is he has to be in it too, because most probably
it was owing to his peculiar Indian ghostiness that we saw it at all. I
don't quite agree, but anyhow that's what he says, and he'd better be
in. Please write by return of post if you can explain this phenomenon.
We hope you aren't dead.

"Yours affec.,

"DICK."


Mollie read this letter through twice, then laid it down and ate her
egg and toast without thinking much of what she was doing. She felt
rather startled again; things were certainly queerish. Either her vivid
dream had penetrated to Dick's brain--and such experiences were not
altogether unknown between the twins--or else--or else Prudence really
_had_ come yesterday, and there was something in that story of the
Time-travellers. So the experiment had worked too. She remembered the
brilliant parrot.

She could not make up her mind how much of her story she might tell to
Dick. Her vow had only applied to grown-ups, and since the Campbells
had helped her to wish Dick over, presumably they would allow her to
take him into her confidence. But would he believe such an unlikely
story--and what about Young Outram? They had not bargained for two
boys. She decided to wait and see if Prudence came again, and, in the
meantime, to write and tell Dick that she was alive and well, and that
some explanation of his most extraordinary vision would certainly be
forthcoming sooner or later.

The morning passed much more quickly than the previous morning had
done. Mollie and Grannie worked hard at the jig-saw puzzle, and,
without breaking her word by the smallest fraction, Mollie contrived to
get a considerable amount of information about Australia from Grannie.
Not, of course, that she was totally ignorant on the subject of our
Australian colonies, but her knowledge was vague, and her interest
before this time had been so faint that it was hardly worth mentioning.
Grannie, on the other hand, had had a brother and many friends in
Australia, and had, at one time or another, corresponded with a number
of people there. She was able to tell Mollie several thrilling tales of
bush fires, of the gold-fields, and of Ned Kelly, the great bushranger.
But in none of her stories did the name of the Campbells appear.

After lunch Mollie was again tucked up on her sofa and told to take a
little nap. Grannie was somewhat amused to be asked for the
photograph-album again. "Bairns have queer fancies," she thought to
herself, as she laid it on Mollie's lap. "Don't look too long, my
lamb," she said aloud. "Try and go to sleep. You were all the better
yesterday. There is Aunt Mary playing the piano--dear me, it is long
since I heard that tune!"

When Mollie was left alone she opened the album, lay back on her
cushions, and stared hard at the picture of prim little Prudence.

"_Now_ we shall see! Was it a dream, or will she come again? That is
the question."

But nothing happened. Prudence stared solemnly and stolidly back,
looking almost too good for human nature's daily food.

"But she wasn't, I feel sure she wasn't, even if it _was_ all a dream.
Oh--_how_ disappointing! I did hope that parrot of Dick's meant
something, and I do so want to see those children again and know what
happened next. Besides, it would be thrilling to be a
Time-traveller--one could see all sorts of things."

As she meditated over her disappointment Mollie turned the pages of the
album, looking rather listlessly at the other children, and deciding
that none was so attractive as Prudence, till she came to a group of
three girls and a boy. She looked closer, then stretched out her hand
for the reading-glass and looked again: "I do believe it is--yes, it
_is_--Hugh and Prudence and Grizzel and Baby! How I _wish_ they would
come alive!"

Even as she said the last word she saw a smile dawn upon Prue's face.
She did not drop the album this time but held tightly on to it, closed
her eyes, and counted twenty. When she opened them there stood Prue,
looking as good and sweet as ever.

"Oh, I _am_ glad to see you!" Mollie exclaimed, sitting up and holding
out her hands. "I thought it was all a dream, and that you were not
coming. You will take me with you again, won't you? I did love
yesterday."

Prudence smiled and took Mollie's hands in her own. "We need not waste
time talking to-day," she said. "Listen to the music."

Mollie shut her eyes and listened to Aunt Mary, who just then began to
sing--Mollie could hear the words quite plainly:

  "Oft in the stilly night,
  Ere slumber's chain hath bound me,
  Fond memory brings the light
  Of other days around me."

They were standing on a rough deeply rutted cart-track high up on a
hill-side. Behind them the hill rose steeply, so thickly wooded that
Mollie could not see plainly to the top. Before her it fell in a gentle
slope to a narrow valley, through which ran a shallow creek with green
banks on either side. Straight before her, half-way up the opposite
hill, she saw a white cottage covered with a scarlet flowering creeper.
It had casement windows all wide open, and a trellised porch. The
garden of the cottage reached to the foot of the hill, and for
three-quarters of its length was filled with rows of vines, looking
like green lines ruled on a brown slate.

On one side of the little vineyard Mollie could see a path winding up
the hill, twisting in and out between vines and overhanging trees till
it lost itself in a flower-garden, which made such a splash of rosy
pink and flaming scarlet that Mollie thought it might have been spilt
out of a sunset.

By the roadside at her feet sat Grizzel, red curls still bobbing round
her head, and apparently the very same blue overall still clothing her
slim little body. She was moulding a lump of wet clay, shaping it into
a bowl, pinching here, smoothing there, patting and pressing with both
little grubby hands. On a strip of grass before her stood a long row of
golden balls, glittering in the sunshine as if they had newly left a
jeweller's shop.

Prudence stood beside Mollie, rolling a clay ball round and round in
her hands; and Mollie discovered presently that she herself was also
rolling a lump of sticky stiff mud into some sort of shape, she was not
sure what, but it seemed very important that it should be exactly right.

As she watched the other two children, she saw Grizzel rise to her feet
and run a few steps along the road to where, on the upper slope, a
wedge had been sliced out of the hill, leaving a three-cornered open
space which glittered curiously. This apparently was where the golden
balls came from, for Grizzel stooped down, and lifting a handful of
shining sand let it filter evenly through her fingers over her bowl.
She then set the bowl on the ground, and lightly rubbed the gold sand
into its surface. She repeated this process three times, then
straightened herself, rubbed her gritty hands on her overall, shook the
curls out of her eyes, and said:

"It's quite a nice bowl. If _only_ we could make them hold water, Prue,
it would do beautifully for Mamma's Russian violets."

As Grizzel spoke Mollie suddenly realized that she knew where she was.
They were in "the hills", across the way was their summer cottage, and
those blue-green trees were gum trees. She remembered the long road she
had seen from the Look-out, and how she had longed to follow it and see
what lay behind those hills.

She carried her ball along to the wedge in the hill-side and rolled it
in the golden sand, rubbing it and sprinkling it as she had seen
Grizzel do, and soon it took on a splendid yellow shine.

"It looks very nice, Mollie," said Grizzel. "I like the way you've
shaped it like an orange. I wonder if I could make a bunch of
cherries--I think I will try to-morrow. Put it here beside mine; it is
the hottest place."

Mollie stopped and put her ball--which she now saw she _had_ shaped
like an orange--beside Grizzel's on the sunny patch of grass. Then she
stood up and looked round her again.

"Where is Hugh?" she asked, "and Baby, and your father and mother?"

"I think that is Hugh prowling among the roses over the way," Prudence
answered, shading her eyes with one hand, and looking across the valley
at the garden. "What is he doing, I wonder--he seems to have lost
something! Baby is with Bridget. Papa and Mamma haven't come up yet.
Miss Hilton is supposed to be taking care of us, but she is rather a
goose."

"All the better for us," said Grizzel. "If she were strict and fussy we
wouldn't have nearly such a nice time as we do. You have only to say
snake to Miss Hilton and she is ready to faint; it is useful sometimes."

"Why should you say snake?" asked Mollie, feeling rather relieved to
hear that the elders of the family were away.

"Because there are snakes about, and she is terrified of them,"
Prudence explained.

"Oh dear--so am I, horribly frightened!" Mollie exclaimed. "I never saw
a snake in my life except in the Zoo." "Then how do you know you are
frightened of them?" Grizzel asked. "You only have to be a little firm
with them and they won't do you any harm. I have lived in Australia for
years and years and have never once been bitten."

"I hope I will never meet one when I am alone," Mollie said, shaking an
unconvinced head.

While the other children counted their balls, dried their hands, and
tied on their sunbonnets, Mollie stood still and gazed about her. The
country she saw looked strange and unfamiliar to her eyes. So far as
she could see there seemed to be few trees but gum trees, with their
monotonous foliage and gaunt grey trunks, so different from the mossy
trunks at home in English woods. Here and there one had fallen, and lay
like a giant skeleton on the ground. On all sides were hills, not very
high, but rolling one behind the other like waves, some wooded and some
bare of trees and covered only with short grass and rough boulders.
Over everything was the same beautiful clear sunlight that had
impressed Mollie so much on her first visit, and the air was warm and
soft. She thought of the dull street at home in North Kensington, with
brick houses all crowded up together and dingy little back-yards, and
she wished that her family could come and live in this wide and sunny
country.

As she stood, a cry came across the valley.

"Coo-eee! Cooo-eeeee!"

"There's Bridget calling for tea," said Prudence. "Come on quick; I'm
as hungry as a hunter, and Biddy said she would make some damper,
because we are rather short of bread."

"What is damper?" asked Mollie, as she followed the other two down the
hill. "Is it wet bread?"

"Don't you know what _damper_ is?" Grizzel asked, with round eyes. "It
is unleavened bread--you know, like the Children of Israel ate.
Sometimes we find manna too, lying underneath the trees, but I don't
like it much. I am glad I am not a Child of Israel," she added; "I
don't like that old Moses. Do you?"

"I haven't thought about him very much," Mollie confessed; "I suppose
he was all right in his own way."

"He was so fond of Thou shalt not," Grizzel objected, "and I can't
_bear_ thou shalt nots. If _I_ had made the commandments I should have
said 'Thou oughtest not to commit murder, but if thou doest thou shalt
be hung'. Don't you think that would be more interesting?"

"No, I don't," Mollie answered decidedly, "I like things to be short
and plain like Thou shalt not steal. Then you know where you are."

Prudence looked disapprovingly at her sister. "You should not talk like
that, Grizzel; it is flippant, and you know what Papa says about
flippancy."

Grizzel made a face but did not answer, and they went on in silence
till they reached the foot of the hill. They crossed the little creek
by stepping-stones, and walked slowly up the winding path, the vines
with their ripening grapes on the one side, and on the other great
cherry trees, laden with the largest and reddest cherries that Mollie
had ever seen in her life. They hung down temptingly among the green
leaves, dangling their little bunches in the most inviting way
imaginable, some scarlet, some black, and some almost white, but all
ripe and luscious. The children stretched up their hands and pulled
some, which tasted as good as they looked.

"I'm going to make cherry jam to-morrow," Grizzel said, dropping her
stones on the ground and carefully pushing them into the soil with the
heel of her boot. "I'm going to make the first beginnings of my
fortune."

"What fortune?" asked Mollie, throwing her stones away in the careless
fashion of people who are accustomed to buying their fruit in shops.

"My jam fortune," Grizzel answered. "Every year Mamma sends a case of
jam home to Grandmamma, and this year I am going to put in twelve tins
of my very own jam, and Grandmamma will sell it and put the money in
the bank for me. She promised she would if I was a good girl, and I've
been as good as it is possible for a human being to be."

"But can _you_ make really-truly jam?" Mollie asked
incredulously--Grizzel looked so small and young to be a maker of real
jam in shoppy tins.

"Grizzel is a _beautiful_ cook," said Prudence, with an air of great
pride. "You wait till you taste her herring-shape, and her parsnip
sauce. Mamma says that cooks are born, not made, and that Grizzel is
born and I'm not made."

Mollie felt an immense respect for Grizzel. Cooking was not her own
strong point, as her Guide captain had informed her in plain language
more than once, and in any case food at home was too precious for
children to experiment with except under supervision--there could be no
playing about with fruit and sugar for instance. She began to think
that if there were some things she could teach these forty-years-ago
children, there were also some things she could learn from them--a
thought which would have given her mother much pleasure could she have
seen into her daughter's mind at that moment.

"Hullo, girls!" said Hugh, coming out of the garden as they drew near
the cottage, "I've got an idea."

[Illustration: GRIZZEL THREW IN A SMALL HANDFUL OF TEA]

Mollie turned to look at Hugh. He had grown a little taller, she
thought, but was as clear-eyed and meditative as ever. And behind Hugh
was the flower-garden, full of roses--thousands and thousands of roses,
mostly pale pink. They were loose-petalled and exquisitely sweet. The
children paused for a moment before going into the house, and all four
sniffed up the delicate fragrance appreciatively.

"That's my idea," said Hugh, with an extra loud sniff. "Scent! Let's
make attar of roses. It costs a guinea a drop to buy, and we could make
bottles full. I've been examining the rose-bushes--they are simply
packed full of buds behind the flowers. I have been reading about it.
It's quite easy to do; you merely have to extract the essential oil
from the petals and there you are. I'll show you after tea."

They passed through the porch into the house. There was no hall; they
walked straight into the sitting-room, where a table was spread with
tea, and Miss Hilton, a rather faded-looking lady of middling age, was
already seated behind the tea-pot.

"Go and wash your hands, children," she said, in a voice that matched
her looks, "and smooth your hair. I am _surprised_ at you coming into
the room like this. I don't know what your visitor will think, I am
sure. Children have _very_ different manners in England."

Mollie glanced round at the other three. She herself stood behind Miss
Hilton and was therefore not within that lady's line of vision. She
winked largely with her left eye, and a smile of relief travelled round
the room.

Tea was a silent meal in spite of the festive damper, which was so good
that Mollie thought it must have alleviated the unfortunate lot of the
Children of Israel considerably. Hugh was thinking out his plan for
making attar of roses; Prue was day-dreaming about nothing in
particular, as she was too fond of doing; Grizzel's mind was wandering
away to golden bowls, golden cherries, and other possible and some
quite impossible golden achievements; while Mollie listened to Baby,
who carried on a long and intimate conversation with a family of
bread-and-butter--otherwise the beddy-buts--which had found a temporary
home upon her plate. Miss Hilton poured out tea absent-mindedly, and
seldom spoke except to rebuke someone for putting elbows on the table.

As soon as the meal was over the children went into the garden again,
and, once outside, their tongues began to move.

"I shall nab Baby's bronchitis-kettle," Hugh announced, "and make a
distiller, and we can begin to-morrow. You girls will have to help me,
for I must watch the distilling all the time, and someone must keep me
supplied with fresh rose-petals."

"I can't do much, because I'm going to make jam," said Grizzel, "and I
want Prue and Mollie to help me to gather cherries. I've got one or two
new ideas"--Mollie thought the family seemed great on ideas--"but, if
you'll solder up my jam tins, I'll help with your attar."

"I'll tell you what," said Prue, "we'll have a secret breakfast."

"What's a secret breakfast?" asked Mollie.

"You'll see in a minute," Prue answered. "It's a lovely thing. Then
we'll get up and pull the cherries and cut them open, and we can pick
the roses afterwards, when they are warm and dry."

"Then we had better get the things ready now," said Grizzel.

So while Hugh went off to a little old hut, which served them for a
playroom, to build up his distillery, the three girls set out to
inspect the cherry trees, and engaged in the pleasing task of tasting a
few cherries off each tree to decide which had the finest flavour.

"I think they are all absolutely topping," said Mollie. "I don't know
how you can tell which is best."

"What funny words you use," said Grizzel. "Topping!"

"Well--top-hole then, or ripping, or great, or first-class, or jolly
good."

Both hearers laughed. "You had better not let Miss Hilton hear you,"
said Prue, "or she will tell Mamma, and then you will have to write out
'topping' a hundred times."

Grizzel led the way to the flower-garden, which was laid out on the
terrace immediately below the cottage. A sanded path ran along by the
rose-bed, which was banked up for two feet or so to keep the soil from
washing down in the rainy season. Prudence and Grizzel stopped at a
corner where, in a sheltered angle, lay a low pile of bricks built up
four-square with a hollow centre.

"This is our fire-place," Prue explained to Mollie. "When we get up
very early we make a fire here and boil tea and have a secret
breakfast, because proper breakfast isn't till nine o'clock when Miss
Hilton is mistress, and we get so hungry--besides, it is a lark."

"Write out 'lark' one hundred times, my dear Prudence," said Grizzel,
in a voice so exactly like Miss Hilton's that Mollie looked round with
a start, and the other two laughed.

They gathered sticks, which they carried into the kitchen to be dried,
Bridget being a good-natured conspirator, and they collected sugar,
tea, and damper for their feast. Darkness falls early in Australia, and
the children decided to go to bed in good time, so that they should
waken fresh in the morning. Mollie thought that their bedroom was a
delightful place, quite different from a London bedroom. It had a door
to itself, with a flight of wooden steps leading down to the garden, so
that the children could slip out without disturbing the household.
Mollie thought this very romantic.

"You won't think it very romantic if some old bushranger gets in
through the night and shoots you dead," Grizzel cheerfully suggested.

"Be quiet, Grizzel," Prudence said reprovingly. "What is the use of
frightening Mollie like that? You never saw a bushranger in your life."

But a London girl, who has been through a dozen air-raids without
losing any nerve, is not likely to disturb herself over a possible but
improbable bushranger, and indeed Mollie was blissfully ignorant on the
subject in spite of Grannie's tales; so she went to bed quite
peacefully in the little camp-bed, and lay for a time watching the
brilliant stars shine through the wide-open window. The lovely night
scents floated in with the soft breeze, and Mollie could hear strange
birds calling to their mates at an hour when most English birds are in
bed and fast asleep.

The first rosy streaks of dawn saw the three girls making their morning
toilet at the pump, where the water was cold even to the touch of
English Mollie, but it was freshening, and they emerged from their
splashes with pink cheeks and ravenous appetites. The "inventor" loved
his bed and did not join in the morning revels. (So boys _were_ lazy
lie-a-beds in Father's young days, thought Mollie.)

Prudence and Mollie went straight to the cherry trees with their
baskets, while Grizzel lighted the fire and prepared the secret
breakfast. She called them before the first baskets were quite full.
The fire was burning cheerfully, sending long streamers of wood smoke
into the morning air. On the bricks sat a billy-can full of water just
on the boil, and, as it bubbled up, Grizzel threw in a small handful of
tea, giving it a stir round with a cherry twig. She let it bubble again
while she counted ten, then lifted the can to one side and put the lid
on. She had begged a cup of warm, frothy milk from the milk-boy's pail
as he came up the hill. The damper was sitting on the hot bricks, and
Grizzel had gathered a plateful of strawberries from the berry-bed at
the foot of the hill.

They sat down on the sandy path, holding their mugs of steaming tea in
one hand and their damper in the other, large juicy strawberries taking
the place of jam. Mollie thought it was the most exquisitely delightful
breakfast she had ever tasted in her life. The sun had risen and was
sending his beautiful rays along the valley; they fell upon the roses
and heliotrope in the garden and on the misty blue-green of the gum
trees on the hill opposite. As the children munched in silent
enjoyment, their eyes wandering here and there, one long shaft of light
fell straight upon the patch of golden sand, so that it glittered as
though it were the door to Aladdin's cave. Prue reached out her hand
and pulled down a branch of sweet-scented geranium, crushing a leaf and
holding it to Mollie's nose.

"Isn't it nice here, Mollie?" she said.

"It's perfectly heavenly," Mollie answered, with a sigh. "Why can't all
the world be as nice as this, and why do people _ever_ live in streets?"

They tidied up the remains of their breakfast, and were soon back at
work in the cherry trees. By nine o'clock they had filled four baskets
and had stoned more than half, and laid them in a shallow pan with
sugar over them "to draw", as Grizzel explained. They cracked the
kernels and took out the tiny white nuts, and last of all Grizzel added
a good handful of gooseberries.

"That's my idea," she said, "it will help the cherries to jell. I think
I will pop in some red currants too."

"You _are_ clever," Mollie said admiringly. "I never in all my life saw
a girl as young as you make jam."

"When I am grown up," Grizzel said, sucking her sugary fingers as she
spoke, "I am going to have a fruit-farm and make immense quantities of
jam to send home. Grandmamma says our jam is the nicest she has tasted,
especially our peach and apricot. I am going to try grape jam too, and
I shall preserve mandarin oranges whole, and pineapples, and figs."

Mollie suddenly remembered big tins of jam which used to arrive from
Australia now and then, at a time when jam was very scarce and precious
in London. She smiled to herself as she wondered if they had been
Grizzel's jams--they might have been. At any rate they must have come
from beautiful gardens like this.

"If you do," she said to Grizzel, "put a picture of yourself and a
cherry tree on the tin. It will look much prettier than 'Campbell's
Jams'!"

This made the children laugh, and they went in to their second
breakfast feeling very cheerful and what Mollie called "pleased with
life". The lazy inventor made his appearance halfway through the meal,
looking still rather sleepy. "Come and see my distillery," he said,
when breakfast was over, "I fixed it up last night."

Hugh had set the bronchitis-kettle--always carried about with Baby, who
was subject to croup--on the fire-place, and had fixed a long narrow
jam-tin on to the end of the spout.

"I put the roses and water into the kettle," he explained, "and they
boil, and the steam comes out and drops into this cold tin and
condenses. Then, when we have enough, we boil that up and condense
again. Then we skim the oil that rises to the top, and that is attar of
roses. It is perfectly simple."

"It _sounds_ simple," said Mollie, "but--"

"But what?" asked Hugh, with a frown.

"Oh, I don't know--just but," said Mollie, in a hurry. "I don't know a
thing about distilling; how many boilings will it take to collect a
bottle of attar?"

"A good many, but you must not forget that a bottle holds a great many
drops, and each drop is worth a guinea, so that a lavender-water bottle
will hold about three hundred guineas' worth."

Mollie was greatly impressed. How easy it was to make fortunes in
Australia! And how much pleasanter a way than Father's way, which meant
living in a street and sighing over bills, and not making much of a
fortune after all.

The girls returned to the garden, and soon gathered enough petals for
the first boiling. Hugh, in the meantime, lit the fire and fetched
water from the rain-water tank. "It says water from a spring, in the
book," he said, "but there's nothing like rain-water really for this
kind of work."

Soon Grizzel said she must go to her jam-making. Prudence stayed to
help Hugh, and Mollie decided to hover between both fortune-building
schemes, as she was too deeply interested in the results to wish to
miss either. For an hour they worked hard, Mollie and Prudence bringing
in fresh supplies of roses, rain-water, and logs of wood, for the fire
had to be kept well stocked. The room got very hot, for Hugh would not
allow any windows to be opened, and a good part of the steam managed to
escape in spite of all his care. Indeed it seemed to Mollie that more
steam got into the room than into the tin. After the third instalment
of roses and water she asked if she could be spared to go and see how
the jam was getting on.

"You might bring back some bread and skimmings," said Prudence.
"Working like this makes you so hungry."

The day was warm, but it was refreshing to get out of doors after the
steamy atmosphere of the playroom. Mollie sauntered along, keeping in
the shade of the trees, a little tired after her early rising. She
could see Bridget and Baby at the bottom of the garden gathering
gooseberries for a pudding. Baby's pink sun-bonnet bobbed about like a
rose going for a walk in the berry-bed. Before she reached the kitchen
door she began to smell something uncommonly like burning sugar.

"I expect it has spilt on the stove," she thought; "that pot is pretty
heavy for Grizzel to lift."

The smell got stronger and stronger, and when Mollie reached the
kitchen there was not only a smell but smoke. There was no sign of
Grizzel, nor of anyone else; the house was silent and empty but for the
sizzling and smoking of the boiled-over jam. Mollie ran to the stove--a
funny flat arrangement, different from the stoves of her acquaintance.
The jam had evidently been boiling over for some time, for not only the
saucepan, the stove, and the fender, but even the floor was covered
with a dark-brown sticky syrup. She trod carefully to the fire-place
and lifted the pan to one side, the smoke and steam making her eyes
water.

"Making fortunes is pretty hot work in Australia," she muttered to
herself. "If I made many there wouldn't be much of me left to enjoy
them with. Where on earth is Grizzel?"

She found her in their bedroom, arranging some vine leaves and green
grapes in her golden bowl, quite oblivious of a world which contained
jam.

"I think your jam is burning, Grizzel--I am afraid it is rather badly
burnt."

"My jam!" said Grizzel, coming back to the world of every day.
"Goodness me! I forgot all about the jam." She hastily dumped her bowl
down on the window-sill, and flew to the kitchen, followed by Mollie.

"Oh dear, dear, dear!" she cried, when her eyes fell upon the scene of
devastation. "Oh, my jam! my jam! Oh, why am I _both_ a cook and an
artist? One half of me is _always_ getting into the way of the other
half! Oh, Mollie--my lovely, beautiful jam!"

"Let's taste it and see; _perhaps_ it isn't burnt," Mollie suggested.
But one sip was enough. "Ab-so-lute wash-out!" was her verdict. Grizzel
seized the pot by the handle and made for the door.

"What are you going to do?" asked Mollie, following her.

"Bury it," said Grizzel, laying down the pot and seizing a spade. She
rapidly dug a shallow hole, poured the sticky black mixture into it and
tossed back the earth.

"And they were so pretty a few hours ago," she wailed. "Why on earth
did I go and spoil them like that! Oh, Mollie, I am a cruel girl!"

"It isn't _really_ any more cruel than eating them," said Mollie
consolingly. "I'd just as soon be burnt as eaten myself--only perhaps
one might be cooked first and eaten afterwards. I must say it is rather
hard lines on mutton when you come to think of it."

Grizzel took the blackened pot to the pump, filled it with water, and
carried it back to the kitchen. The fire was nearly out, and logs had
to be piled on and blown up with the bellows before the pot could be
set on again. Grizzel looked round for a towel to clear up the horrible
mess with, but Bridget had washed her towels that morning and they were
all hanging out to dry on the line.

"Get a newspaper and crumple it up," suggested Mollie; "wet it in the
pot-water."

When Bridget and Baby appeared at the door, two very hot and sticky
children were surrounded by a litter of crumpled, wet, black
newspapers, and the stove was as far as you can possibly imagine from
being clean.

"Holy saints!" said Bridget.

Nothing could have looked less like holy saints than Mollie and Grizzel
did at that moment. They stood up in the midst of the ruins, and Mollie
waited for the skies to fall. But Biddy was a good-natured soul.

"An' me stove new cleaned this very mornin'--you an' yir jam! Be off
wid ye!" flapping the children out of the way with her apron as she
spoke.

"Come and wash," said Grizzel, catching up a tin basin from the porch
as they went out.

When they were moderately clean again they went back to the playroom to
see how the scent-makers were faring. They found Hugh and Prudence as
red as lobsters; the big kettle had been moved and a tiny one put in
its place.

"I thought I'd better try how the experiment was getting on," Hugh
explained to Mollie and Grizzel. "There's no use doing all the roses
till we see if it's all right; so I'm boiling up the distilled water
now."

He peered into a doll's milk-jug, which was fastened on to the end of
the little spout. "There is a little. We'll just try for oil," he said,
lifting the jug off and carrying it to the window. There was about half
a teaspoonful of water in the bottom.

"It looks oily; I guess there will be one drop." He sniffed anxiously
as he spoke. "And it does smell of roses too, by jiminy!"

They all sniffed in turn, and agreed that there really was an
undeniable smell of roses. "And it _might_ have only smelt of wet tin,"
Hugh said. "Look here, Prue, don't empty that little kettle. We'll boil
it up again and collect another drop. Put some more logs on the fire."

Prudence looked at Hugh with a slightly exasperated expression; she was
very hot and rather tired: "Hugh Campbell, you know as well as I do
that there is nothing but tinny water left in that kettle. If you think
anyone is going to pay a guinea a drop for scent called Wet Tin you are
a goose. I wouldn't buy it if it was the only scent in the world."

Hugh was not discouraged. "My _idea_ is right," he said. "I shall make
a larger distiller and try again. There's plenty more roses. Next time
we are by the sea I shall look for ambergris. It is found floating on
the shores of warm countries, and all scent should have ambergris in
it, properly speaking."

"I shall try again too," said Grizzel. "There's plenty more cherries,
and a new barrel of sugar came yesterday. After all, everybody has ups
and downs when they are making fortunes. I'll take good care never to
burn my jam again."

"I'm not really sure if attar of roses is worth while," Hugh said
thoughtfully, his eyes on the tiny milk-jug in his hand; "only rich
people could afford to buy it. If you want to make a fortune it is
better to make something that everyone wants, rich and poor. Soap might
do."

"Jam," said Grizzel.

"_I'm_ not sure if it is right to make fortunes at all," said Mollie
slowly.

"Why not?" asked the other three all at once.

"Because it doesn't seem fair, somehow. Some people are so frightfully
rich, and some people haven't even enough to eat. My mother goes to the
children's hospital every week, and sometimes she takes me. You can't
_think_ what some of the poor babies are like--and then you go outside
and see rich, _rich_ women in splendid motor-cars--I mean carriages,"
she corrected herself, "and it does make you feel things aren't fair,
and I do like fairness."

The Australian children were silent for a minute or two.

"But if no one was rich no one could give," Grizzel said at last. "We
know very rich people here, and they do lovely kind things. Mrs. Basil
Hill sends us a packing-case of _exquisite_ oranges every summer, and
when she comes to see Mamma she almost always brings us a surprise
packet--last time it was five pounds of the most beautiful sweets in
Rundle Street, and the time before it was all Miss Alcott's books."

"But if everybody was the same, people wouldn't have to give you
things," said Mollie. "You'd have them yourself."

"Then we would never get a surprise," said Grizzel, "and that would be
horribly dull. Don't you think it would be dull if everybody was
exactly the same?"

"I suppose it would," Mollie admitted, with a sigh, feeling that she
had not presented her case attractively; "but I think they might be
samer than they are."

"There's no use talking," Hugh said decisively. "Australia is full of
fortunes waiting to be made. I heard Papa say so. And the early bird
gets the worm, and the better the bird the better it is for everyone
all round."

"Except the worm," said Grizzel.

They all laughed. "I wish I had a brother instead of three sisters,"
Hugh remarked, emptying the contents of the tiny milk-jug over a
handkerchief which had once been clean. "A brother would be some use.
Where's yours?" he asked Mollie. "Did he get our message?"

This reminded Mollie of Dick's letter, which impressed the Australians
as much as it had impressed Mollie.

"So the next thing--the next thing----" she repeated, looking round at
the other three children. "What _is_ the next thing to do?"

"We can't tell you," Prudence said, with a funny little smile, "you'll
have to fix it yourself in the end."

"Cooo-eeeee!" sounded from the cottage.

       *       *       *       *       *

"Cherry jam for tea to-day, fresh from the preserving-pan," Aunt Mary
was saying. "That will be a treat for you, Mollie, my dear."




CHAPTER IV

The Treasure-hunters or The Duke's Nose


"Cherry jam is certainly very _runny_," said Aunt Mary at tea-time.

"Do you put a handful of gooseberries into it?" Mollie asked rather
dreamily, as she tried in vain to spread her scone tidily.

"Gooseberries! Why, no; I never thought of it. It might be quite a good
idea."

"Or red currants?" Mollie went on.

"Red currants! Bless the child! I didn't know you were a cook, Mollie."

"Neither I am," said Mollie, rousing herself up to the fact that she
was back in Chauncery, and must set a watch upon her tongue. Why was
it, she wondered, that she forgot Chauncery so much more when she was
with those other children than she forgot the children when she was at
Chauncery? "I once heard a person say they put gooseberries and red
currants into cherry jam, and I suddenly remembered," she told Aunt
Mary.

"Well, it is too late for cherries, but I will try it for the
strawberries to-morrow. It will be quite an interesting experiment."

Mollie resolutely pushed her thoughts about the cherry garden and its
occupants into the background, and gave her whole mind to a game of
patience with Grannie, who was getting a little tired of jig-saw. But
when that was over, and Grannie was absorbed in casting on a
stocking-top with an intricate pattern, while Aunt Mary wrote letters,
she began again to think and wonder about her curious journey, which
for some reason seemed less strange to-day than it had done yesterday.
She pondered over ways and means to get Dick across, or over, or
through, "or whatever you call it when you travel in Time", she
thought; "back might be the best word. I do _wish_ I could tell Aunt
Mary."

She looked thoughtfully at her aunt, whose head was bent over her
writing, the smooth bands of her silky, brown hair shining brightly in
the lamp-light. No doubt some, perhaps most, grown-ups would scoff at
her tale if she told it, Mollie thought. Grown-up people as a rule love
best to jog along on well-trodden, safe, commonplace paths, and avoid
adventurous by-ways, but Aunt Mary, Mollie felt sure, was an
anti-jogger, so to speak, and would always choose adventures if she had
a choice. "It's funny to think," Mollie reflected, "that she can't be
so very much younger than Mrs. Campbell is--was--is--was then. I
suppose she is about thirty-five, and Mrs. Campbell forty or so--she
looks--looked old enough to be Aunt Mary's mother. Being good at games
keeps her young; she can beat me to a frazzle at golf and tennis; and
she is frightfully keen on aeroplanes; I'm sure she would fly if it
weren't for Grannie. I wonder why she never got married?"

Mollie had not yet come to the age of sentiment, but now and then she
reached forward a little and surveyed its possibilities, and now she
paused awhile to muse upon the subject of her aunt's spinsterhood. Not
for long, however; she decided that Aunt Mary must have had excellent
reasons of her own for remaining single, and returned to the more
pressing problem of how to get Dick into the Campbells' garden. Finally
she thought of a plan worth trying.

"Grannie, may I have the loan of one of your photographs?" she asked.
"Dick has a way of copying them with a thing he has that makes them
look like drawings, and the old-fashioned ones are the prettiest."

"By all means, if he will be careful," Grannie answered, nine-tenths of
her mind being fixed on her new pattern and only one-tenth upon her
grandchild's peculiar fancy for Victorian photographs. So Mollie wrote
a short letter to her brother, enclosing the group which had worked the
magic charm for herself that afternoon. She put it into the evening
post-bag with a sigh. "If that doesn't do it I _can't_ think of
anything else," she said to herself.

It is remarkable how quickly one becomes used to a new routine. Already
Mollie was making more use of her hands and head because she could not
use her feet. She was fond of writing, and decided next morning to
begin an account of her strange adventure while it was still fresh in
her mind. In the intervals of other plans for her future career she had
dreams of becoming a writer of books, but her difficulty hitherto had
been that the usual sort of book is so ordinary, and she had never been
able to think of anything remarkably unusual to write about. The
autobiography of a person who could live in various periods of the
Christian Era might turn out to be quite interesting, she thought, if
only people would believe that it was true. The trouble was that most
likely they would think she was inventing it, "and anyone can _invent_
any old thing. And this is only the beginning of my adventures. When I
have thoroughly learnt how to Time-travel I will go back much
further--perhaps to the French Revolution, and watch people being
guillotined."

She scribbled diligently in the thick exercise-book, which Aunt Mary
produced without once asking what it was wanted for. "It just shows--"
Mollie murmured gratefully; "some people would have teased me to death."

And so time passed, and half-past two came round again in the usual
inevitable way, and Mollie lay expecting Prudence as calmly as though
she were coming from next door. She had the album on her lap, and was
turning the pages in search of a new photograph, when in the twinkling
of an eye Prue was there.

"We don't need that now," she said, "but we must have Aunt Mary's
tunes. Where is she?"

"Oh dear, dear, I forgot!" Mollie cried in dismay. "I do believe Aunt
Mary is making strawberry jam, and I went and told her about putting in
gooseberries and red currants, and her head will be full of them and
she will forget me!"

But the lullaby had not been forgotten. At that very moment the piano
began--a tune Mollie knew well this time, for she had often heard the
American soldiers sing it in London:

  "Oh, darkies, how my heart grows weary,
  Far from the old folks at home".

"Give me your hand--quick," said Prue in a whisper.

       *       *       *       *       *

Mollie found herself standing on a wide beach in the curve of a
beautiful bay. Before her lay the sea, dark blue in the distance, a
clear emerald green by the shore. To the right of her the beach
stretched as far as she could see, firm yellow sand on the lower half,
fine white silvery sand higher up. On the left it only ran for a couple
of miles or so and then ended in rocks, over which the sea threw a cool
white spray. Behind her, Mollie saw, when she turned, the line of the
beach was followed by sandhills, some covered with low-growing scrub
and some quite bare and treeless, shining like snow in the hot sunlight.

The children were all there. At a little distance from where she stood
Mollie could see Hugh and Prudence, Hugh lightly clad in a
swimming-suit, and Prue with her skirts rolled up and her feet bare. A
wide sun-hat covered her head, and her brown curls were fastened back
with a clasp, which made her look older, Mollie thought.

The two children were hauling a large, square, flat object down to the
sea, Hugh pulling in front with ropes, and Prudence pushing behind.

"I do believe it's the raft," thought Mollie. "This must be Brighton,
and I suppose the summer holidays have come round again. It is a little
difficult to keep up with Time here. I do _wish_ Dick could come!"

Grizzel was sitting on the beach close beside her, and seemed to be
gathering shells from a little pale-rose patch on the sand at her feet.
She was very absorbed in her task, but she looked up at Mollie with a
smile, apparently not at all surprised to see her there. She was
dressed, like Prue, in a turned-up overall and wore a wide hat, which
hid the red curls from view and gave her an unfamiliar look. Bridget
was sitting not far from Grizzel, busily doing crochet-work and singing
a song about a wild Irish boy, while her eyes wandered after Baby, who
was singing a little song of her own invention about a poor lonely
whale who had a loving heart. Higher up the beach, at the foot of the
sandhills, Mollie could see Professor and Mrs. Campbell, one reading
aloud and the other sewing.

"Where shall I go first?" Mollie asked herself, "I think I'll go and
see what Hugh and Prudence are doing."

She found, when she began to walk, that she was bare-legged and bunchy
about the skirts like the other girls, and that her head was covered
with a sun-hat like theirs, a tanned Panama straw, light as a feather,
and shading her eyes from the glare of sea and sand. The sun was very
hot and the sand was warm under her feet.

"Hullo! Here's Mollie the Jolly!" exclaimed Hugh, as she drew near.
"Come along and lend a hand--we are just about to launch the good ship
_Nancy Lee_ on her trial trip."

Mollie examined the raft with deep interest. It was really very neatly
made, the planks straight and smooth, and firmly held together by
cross-bars underneath. There was a mast in the exact centre, with a
sail at present close-reefed, and there was a pair of old oars which,
Hugh explained, had been purchased from a boatman of his acquaintance.
All round the raft were bunches of corks, several hundreds at least.

"Did Prue and Grizzel find all those?" Mollie asked.

"We all collected 'em," Hugh replied; "lots of people gave us
corks--jolly old winebibbers they must be," he added ungratefully. "Now
then--with a long, long pull and a strong, strong pull!"

They got to the edge of the water, and the two girls waded in as far as
they could go without getting their clothes wet, before the raft
finally took to her natural element and rocked up and down on the
smoothly rippling wavelets. A gentle breeze was blowing off the sea,
but the tide was running out, which, Hugh remarked, was a good plan, as
the raft would go out to sea with the tide and come back with the wind
in her sail. He thought, however, that he would not carry any
passengers on the first trip--in fact, to begin with, he would harness
himself to his craft and pull her both out and in, "just till I see how
she goes; she's got to find her sea-legs."

The girls watched the raft and its owner depart into deep water; they
saw Hugh climb on board, and decided that the passengers who sailed
aboard the _Nancy Lee_ would be most suitably attired in
bathing-dresses, as she appeared to slide along as much below the ocean
as above it. After standing for some minutes they wandered along
towards Grizzel, who was still sitting by the pale rosy patch on the
sand. When they sat down beside her Mollie saw that the shells she was
gathering were so tiny that they were hardly larger than a pin's head,
and yet they were perfect in form and colour; she thought she had never
seen anything more exquisite.

"We thread them and make necklaces," Prudence explained; "they are so
thin that you can stick a needle through them quite easily; they come
in beds like this all along the beach. There are lots of lovely shells
here, and sea-eggs too. We collect them sometimes, but our collections
have such a way of getting lost somehow, they are always beginning over
again and ending too soon."

"Can you say 'She sells sea-shells' twenty times running, as fast as
lightning?" asked Grizzel.

"Not running as fast as lightning," Mollie answered, "but I could say
it if I were walking rather slowly."

"I couldn't," said Grizzel, taking no notice of Mollie's flippancy, "if
I were to crawl at the rate of half an inch a year I should be saying
'She shells sea-shells' the whole time."

"You are talking nonsense," said Prudence. "Come up and see Papa and
Mamma."

Mollie was greeted kindly by the older people. She had forgotten to ask
if she was supposed to be a visitor or only spending the day with the
Campbells, but gathered from Mamma's conversation that she was paying a
visit and had arrived that morning. She wondered again how they heard
about her coming; the children appeared to take her for granted, but,
of course, _they_ knew she was a Time-traveller!

As the girls sat by their elders, idly playing with the silvery sand
and chatting to each other, a large steamship came in view, coming from
the north and heading south-west. They all stopped working and talking
as they watched her steaming along, a trail of smoke blowing behind
her, smudging the blue sky with clouds, black at first and gradually
fading to grey.

"That's the English mail," Papa said at last; "she was due to leave the
Semaphore at three o'clock to-day."

They were silent again; the great ship drew nearer--now she was almost
opposite.

"Oh--John--_Home!"_ Mamma said. There was a tremble in her voice that
made Prudence and Mollie look up--there were tears in her eyes.

"I know, little wife, I know," Papa answered softly, putting a hand
over the white hands which had dropped the busy needle.

The girls rose to their feet and left Papa and Mamma. They went down to
the edge of the shore, and stood watching the ship as she began to slip
over the horizon.

"Now she has begun to go down the Big Hill," said Prue. "She will sail
for miles and miles and thousands of miles, and for days and nights and
weeks across all that sea. I wonder if some children on the other side
will be playing on that beach, and will watch her funnel climb over the
top of the hill again and say: 'Here comes the Australian mail!'"

Mollie did not answer. She could not remember ever taking much interest
in the Australian mail. But in future she determined she would always
watch when she had the chance, and wave a friendly hand to the incoming
ships.

Soon there was nothing to be seen of the big steamer but a trail of
smoke, which lingered long in the sky.

Prudence had fallen into a day-dream; and Mollie's eyes were roaming
over the blue sea, when suddenly she caught sight of the raft bobbing
about on the little waves, sometimes above and sometimes below. In the
water in front of the raft she could see Hugh's head, like a round
black ball--and--yes, she was not mistaken, there were two other round
black balls which must also be heads. That was rather odd, she thought;
she had not noticed any other boys about.

"Look, Prue!" she exclaimed, catching Prue by the arm, "look--there is
Hugh, and he has got someone with him--oh, _do_ you think he has
rescued some drowning sailors?"

Prue came out of her day-dream with a jerk, and brought her thoughts
and her eyes back to earth, or rather to sea.

"Yes, he _has_ someone with him," she said. "How funny!"

As they gazed, the three swimmers turned round and, with a good deal of
ducking and slipping, climbed aboard the raft, which triumphantly
survived and remained afloat, though decidedly wet about the deck. They
proceeded to unfurl the sail, which one boy held while the other two
took to the oars, and, after some hard work, the _Nancy Lee_ was safely
beached. Grizzel joined Mollie and Prudence, and the three girls
watched the three boys, not offering to go and help with the raft
because they felt a little shy of the strangers.

Presently one of them turned round--and Mollie gave a jump. The boy's
hair hung over his forehead in wet, black streaks, and he was dressed,
or rather undressed, in a swimming-suit, the rest of him being wet,
white skin; but in spite of this unusual appearance Mollie was almost
sure--in fact she was quite sure--that it was Young Outram. And the
other boy--who kept his back turned in a provoking way as he examined
the raft--why, _that_ boy--yes, it surely was Dick! Mollie squealed and
caught Prue by the arm:

"It's Dick and Jerry Outram!" she exclaimed, jumping up and down with
excitement. "Oh, Prue--have they swum all the way from London without
any clothes?"

Prudence laughed. "Mollie, you _are_ a goose! _Do_ you think they could
swim fourteen thousand miles?"

"Well how--? Oh, I forgot! It is so hard to remember about
Time-travelling here! Oh, Prue, _how_ exciting it is!"

At that moment Dick looked round and saw his sister. Both boys came
racing along the sand towards the girls, kicking up their heels like
young colts.

"Cheerio!" cried Dick, as he pranced up. "What price school! How's this
for a rag? Jolly old beano, I call it!"

"What does he say?" asked Grizzel.

"He says that school isn't much of a place, and that this is a great
lark, and that he enjoys being here immensely," translated Mollie.
"_Some_ psychical phenomena!" exclaimed Young Outram, prancing up in
his turn.

"I'm afraid we haven't got any," said Prudence politely.

"And you forgot to say 'Please' if we had," said Grizzel, with a frown.

"_What_ do they say?" asked Young Outram, looking puzzled.

"Prudence thought you were asking for some what's-its-name-how-much,"
Mollie explained again.

"What _does_ he mean then?" Grizzel asked.

"He means that this is the loveliest magic that he ever heard of," said
Mollie. "You shouldn't use such long words, Jerry, and they aren't true
either, for this is _not_ thingummy phenomena, it is simply common
everyday magic."

"There is no such thing as common magic," said Jerry.

"There is," said Mollie.

"There isn't," said Jerry.

"What do you call it when your mother gives you a dirty little brown
onion to put in the ground and you bring it back to her turned into a
parrot-tulip?" asked Mollie.

"Oh--if you--"

"Stow it, Young Outram, you blighter," Dick interrupted. "Don't be such
a silly old Juggins, making them ratty first go-off like that. Keep
your hair on, Mollie, and don't get the hump over nothing. If you
_must_ jaw about parrots, jaw about the dossy chap we spotted in
school; you are simply talking hot air, both of you."

"_What_ does he say?" asked Hugh, who had come up by this time.

"I wish to goodness you boys would speak plain English," Mollie said
impatiently. "I don't want to spend all my time explaining you to the
others."

"Irry yourry tawrry lierry tharry weerry wirry tawrry lierry thirry,
arry therry yourry woerry urrystarry wurry wurry tharry weerry sayrry,"
said Grizzel, rather angrily and very rapidly.

"_What_ does she say?" asked both boys at once.

"It's only our private language," said Prudence; "she says that if you
talk that way we'll talk our way, and then you won't understand us.
_That_ wouldn't do any good. I think we'd better have a Circle. Give me
your hand, Mollie, and you take Hugh's. And Hugh Dick's, and Dick
Grizzel's, and Grizzel Young Outram's, and Young Outram my other hand.
Now all stand quite still and shut your eyes; listen to the waves, and
try and think of three nice things about the people next you."

The six children stood in a circle, silent and still, as Prudence had
ordered, their eyes tightly closed. They felt the hot beams of the sun
pouring over them, and the cool salt wind blew on their faces and
through their hair; their toes curled and wriggled in the warm, wet
sand, and in their ears was the plash-plash of the little waves beating
backwards and forwards on the beach. It was very pleasant. It seemed
quite easy to think of those three nice things. And presently each
child felt a warm and friendly glow steal up its left arm, through its
heart, down its right arm--and so on to its neighbour. When this
pleasing and cheerful sensation had gone round the Circle three times,
Prudence said: "Now, open your eyes and let go."

They stood there smiling at each other, and feeling almost ready to
burst with goodness and loving kindness towards all the world.

"Now we'll understand each other," said Prue. "Words don't matter much
if you understand people. Now what shall we do?"

"Don't let's stand about any more," said Mollie; "the time does go so
quickly, and there are lovely things to do. What would you like to do,
Young Outram?"

"Call me Jerry all the time," he answered first. "I want to forget
about school while I can--there are a good many of us at school," he
explained to Prudence, "and we are called Old Outram, and Outram Two,
and Young Outram; and there are three Outram Kids at the prep, and
another kid at home."

"_All_ boys!" exclaimed Prudence.

Jerry nodded. There had been nine Outram boys before the war! "Let's go
out on the raft again--please," he added, with a wink at Grizzel, who
smiled back. "You come too; we could easily push you along."

"We'll have to change into our bathing things first," said Prudence;
"the raft looks a little wet. We won't be long."

The girls ran up into the sandhills to change, but before Prue
disappeared she returned to the boys with a basket made of rushes in
her hand, which she had begged from Bridget.

"Here are some buns and grapes," she said a little shyly, "I thought
you might be feeling hungry, and it is a long time yet till tea-time."

Jerry decided on the spot that if he ever _did_ go in for the peculiar
entertainment of falling in love, he would choose a shy girl with brown
curls who did not talk slang and went about distributing buns to hungry
boys. "Her for mine," he expressed it to himself.

The girls were soon back, all in navy-blue bathing-suits, knickers
below, and a belted tunic reaching to their knees above--too much
clothed for Mollie's taste; she liked to be skimpy when she went
swimming. But no one grumbles after they have been in a Circle--at
least, not for the next twenty-four hours--so Mollie endured her
substantial garments philosophically and soon forgot all about them.

The girls waded out to the raft, which the boys had launched. They
climbed on board and were soon in fairly deep water. Mollie and
Prudence slipped off and left lazy Grizzel alone on deck, sitting
cross-legged like a little tailor, one arm flung round the mast. The
raft rocked gently up and down on the calm sea, while the children
swam, ducked, and played about in the clear, sun-warmed water like a
school of young porpoises. As Grizzel sat idly watching the rest, her
eyes fell upon an object which floated at a little distance from the
raft. It was a bottle--a common beer-bottle--its cork rammed well in
and sealed with red wax.

"What's that?" she called to Hugh, pointing to the bottle as it danced
about, twirling round and round, tossing from side to side in the wide
ripples sent out by the children and the drifting raft.

They all made for it. "It's a message from the deep," cried Jerry;
"probably from a ship-wrecked sailor."

Hugh, being the nearest, caught it by its red neck, and the whole party
collected on and about the raft to see what would happen next. But Hugh
refused to break the bottle until they went ashore again.

"The sea might get in and spoil the paper, and the broken glass would
get on deck and cut us; we'll pull her in now and read the message on
the beach," he decided.

They got under way and, practice making perfect, were soon high and dry
on the beach, and the _Nancy Lee_ dragged up and comfortably moored.
The children seated themselves in a ring, and Hugh cautiously knocked
off the neck of the bottle with a stone. He drew out a paper, which had
been carefully rolled round a thin bamboo stick and tied with a red
ribbon. There was no date on the paper, nor was there any sign to show
where the bottle had been thrown in, but written in large, clear
round-hand was the following message:

  IF THE FINDER OF THIS BOTTLE
  WILL SEARCH THE CAVE UNDER
  _THE DUKE'S NOSE_ HE WILL FIND
  SOMETHING TO HIS ADVANTAGE.

"Hidden treasure," said three boys all at once. "Where is The Duke's
Nose?" asked Dick.

"Never heard of it," answered Hugh, looking hard at Jerry, whose nose
was distinctly aquiline and promised to be more so in the future. "You
aren't a duke by any chance, I suppose?" he asked.

"No, old sport, I'm not," Jerry answered, with a grin, "and if I were,
the only treasure you would find in the cave under my nose would be
some jolly sharp teeth, and they wouldn't be at all to your advantage
either."

"It's probably among those rocks over there," Mollie suggested; "I
expect if we went there and walked round we would see something that
looked like a duke's nose."

"But there aren't any big enough to have a cave under them," said
Prudence; "they are all quite little rocks."

"It will be a bit of the cliff, most likely," said Dick, "in fact it is
almost bound to be if there is a cave."

The others agreed that this was probable. "What do you think the hidden
treasure will be?" asked Grizzel. "A sack of diamonds and rubies?"

"I hope not," said Jerry, "for, if it is anything of that sort, we will
have to give it up. If we were caught trying to sell diamonds we'd be
copped at once, and the bobbies would think the bottle story was all
made up. I expect we'd all be put in jail, and it would be jolly
awkward for Dick and me when we got back to school. I think I see the
Old Man's face when we explained that we couldn't come because we were
in an Australian prison in the year 1879 for stealing diamonds. I don't
think!"

"Schoolmasters and mistresses are extraordinarily stupid sometimes,"
said Mollie reflectively. "They are so hard to convince, even about
quite simple things, if they don't want to be convinced. But I
shouldn't care for diamonds myself. I'd like a swanky tennis-racket."

"I'd like a revolver, latest pattern," said Jerry.

"I should like a first-class camera," said Hugh.

"I'd like a pure-bred bull-dog," said Dick.

"I'd like a nice little model sewing-machine," said Prue.

"I'd like six pairs of stilts," said Grizzel, "and then we could all
walk home on them."

Everyone looked a little ashamed; Grizzel was the only one who had
thought of the five others. A murmur went round that of course they had
_meant_ six of everything. Then Mollie began to laugh: "How funny we
will look if we each get all the things," she giggled. "We will walk
home on the stilts, with a revolver and a sewing-machine tied on to
each stilt, and a tennis-racket and a camera on our backs, and six
bull-dogs trotting after us."

This flight of fancy made everyone laugh consumedly: "We must go home
now, anyway," Prudence said, as she dried a tear, "because it is
getting on for tea-time and we have got to get dressed. Perhaps there
will be time to go to the rocks after tea and just _look_ for a nose,
and if we find it we'll take some spades in the morning and dig."

The Campbell's seaside cottage stood behind the sandhills. It had been
built by a retired sea-captain, who had planned it to look as like a
ship inside as a house could be made to look. The walls were panelled
in wood, painted bird's-egg blue, and decorated with pictures of ships.
The windows were round like portholes; the table stood across one end
of the room and was screwed to the floor, as were also the benches on
either side. In the children's rooms were bunks, in rows one above the
other, and the washing-stands were fixtures. It was altogether very
charming and romantic.

Tea was of the kind called high, and the hungry children disposed of
cold ham, an extraordinary number of boiled eggs, several loaves of
smoking hot new bread, and at least a pound of butter and two or three
pounds of jam.

"May we go for a walk to the rocks?" asked Prudence, when tea was over.
"We will go very quietly along the beach and not get wet, and be home
before dark."

Papa said he would walk that way a little later on and meet them; so
Mamma gave permission, and soon a party of six were wandering by the
shore towards the rocks, carrying their boots and stockings slung round
their necks. It did not take them long to cover the two miles which lay
between their beach and the rocks. Mollie found it hard to pass by all
the lovely shells with which the beach was strewn, but the rest were
impatient. The sun was dropping down the sky and they had not too much
time for their search.

It did not promise to be a very successful search, for nowhere was
there anything even remotely like a duke's nose to be seen--nor indeed
any sort of nose. The rocks were low and for the most part jagged, with
pools of water in the hollows between them for unwary or careless
people to slip into. Many of them were covered with periwinkles, which
Grizzel could not resist gathering. She filled her boots with them.

"Papa likes them," she said, when Prudence and Mollie remonstrated with
her for lingering; "he says they taste like a sea-breeze, and if we
aren't going to take back a duke's nose I may as well take a
periwinkle's nose; it will be better than nothing."

The cliffs were high and precipitous, but they were no particular
shape, being, as Hugh said, merely the edge of Australia. The children
scrambled along till they reached the turn of the coast-line, beyond
which were more rocks and cliffs, much the same as those about them.

"Perhaps it isn't here at all," Prudence said, as they seated
themselves in a row on the edge of a big boulder; "the message didn't
say it was. It might be anywhere. Perhaps that bottle came hundreds of
miles, and the Duke's Nose is at the South Pole."

"More likely Kangaroo Island or Yorke's Peninsula," Hugh said. "We
might sail the raft across--it's only about fifty miles to the
Peninsula."

"How'd you get her to go?" asked Jerry. "We couldn't swim fifty miles;
half a mile is my limit at a stretch; Dick can do three-quarters."

"We'd have to use the sail and tack a bit, and we'd have the oars."

"What about food?" asked Prudence.

"We'd sling it in a can on the mast. Water's the trouble; we'd have to
distil sea-water, and that takes coal and might be a bit difficult;
there isn't a place for coal on board yet."

Mollie remembered the attar of roses and decided not to embark upon
that voyage. "We would be pretty thirsty before there was enough water
distilled for us all to drink," she thought to herself.

"Well, we'll have to be getting home now," said Prudence, with a sigh.
"It will be dark before so very long."

A somewhat silent and subdued party set out on the homeward scramble,
the boys in front, Mollie and Prue together, and Grizzel in the rear,
being hampered by her bootfuls of periwinkles, which would keep falling
out. She stopped at last, and, sitting down, she laced her boots
tightly up and tied the tops round with the lace ends. When she looked
up from this task she stopped again to admire the gorgeous sunset. The
whole sky was ablaze, and the sea had changed from blue to crimson and
gold; the wet beach was gleaming like an opal, pale-rose and lavender,
with fiery amber lights shimmering on the rippled sand. The brilliant
glow of the western sky was reflected in the east, and the cliffs stood
out sharply against the light, themselves flushed with pink. Grizzel's
keen young gaze ran along the outline, black where it cut the sky.

"There's nothing there," she said to herself, "only that flagstaff hut,
and it's as square as square."

As she watched, a door opened in the side of the hut and a man came
out, swinging a billy-can in his hand. Suddenly Grizzel caught her
breath. Where had she heard someone say that that hut was a tiny
refreshment-bar, where a man could go in and get boiling water for his
tea--that everlasting tea which the Australian drinks at any and every
hour of the day? It was Papa, and he had said they called the hut 'The
Nose'--short, Grizzel felt sure, for The Duke's Nose. Her eyes ran
quickly down the cliff underneath--yes, she could see the cave quite
plainly when she looked hard, though to the casual glance it looked
like a deep crevice in the cliff.

She looked after the others. They had scrambled on ahead while she was
tying up her periwinkles, and were now too far away to hear anything
but a shout. She put her two hands up to her mouth and gave the long
shrill "Cooo-eeeee!" of the Australian-born child, which caused five
heads to be turned in her direction instantaneously. Prudence started
running back, fearing that her sister had fallen and hurt herself.
Grizzel's gesticulations made things no plainer to the others--when she
pointed to the hut they thought she meant them to get help, so that
Hugh and Dick set off towards the cliff, while Jerry came on with
Mollie and Prudence in case there should be a broken limb.

Even when they got within hailing distance they did not understand, for
what between keeping a foothold on the slippery rocks, hanging on to
her periwinkles, and her excitement over her discovery, Grizzel was
getting breathless and incoherent, and all she did was to point a small
forefinger at the hut and say:
"Duke's-nose-you-know-duke's-nose-you-know-your-nose-dukes-know."

"She is delirious with pain," said Mollie, "and she is mixing the
Duke's Nose up with 'She sells sea-shells'."

However, it was not very long before they reached her side, and she was
able to explain the situation. A few more excited coo-ees brought the
boys back, and the question became: What to do next? The sun was
getting perilously near the horizon, and once it dropped behind the
sea, darkness would fall rapidly and the rocks be really unsafe,
especially as the tide was now coming in.

"We must get up frightfully early in the morning," said Dick at last,
"and come along before breakfast. Nobody is likely to find that
treasure in the next ten hours or so."

With many backward looks they resumed their homeward trek. It was hard
luck to have to leave the treasure when, perhaps, they had almost found
it, but Mamma's word was law, and if they broke their promise about
getting home, or at least meeting Papa, it was quite possible that
to-morrow would be spent by the girls in doing French verbs and making
buttonholes.

The children slept soundly all night in their funny little bunks. Early
in the morning a small figure slipped into the boys' room and shook
first one boy and then another by the shoulders. Dick and Jerry woke up
after a few grunts; Hugh as usual was a sleepy-head.

"Leave him to us," Dick said confidently, "_we'll_ get him up--you'll
see."

"Tell him to come by Gobbler's Hollow," ordered Grizzel; "you'll find
us there. Don't stop to wash."

When the boys were half-way across the sandhills, they saw a thin
column of blue smoke rising from somewhere among the low scrubby trees,
and a minute after a delicious smell greeted their unducal noses--a
smell of wood-smoke and toast combined.

"It's the girls making grub," Hugh explained to the other two; "they're
great on grub." He might have added that he was great on it himself, so
far as eating it was concerned. Certainly Dick and Jerry were very
pleased to know that they had not to wait until half-past eight for
breakfast, for the fresh sea air had given them ravenous appetites.
They found the girls in Gobbler's Hollow--appropriately so named by
Hugh--bending over a gipsy fire. The inevitable billy-can hung from a
tripod, and the steam from it mingled with the smoke of the fire.
Mollie was toasting bread, which Prudence buttered with a lavish hand,
and Grizzel was shelling hard-boiled eggs.

"I call this top-hole," Dick announced, as he squatted down on the sand
and took his tin mug from Mollie, who had begged to be allowed to make
the tea as she had seen Grizzel make it before. "It will buck us up no
end and make us as sharp as needles."

They were in a hurry to get on; so when breakfast was done they pushed
the mugs and knives into the hollow of a bush, which Grizzel explained
was their storeroom. Later in the day the girls would come back and
tidy up; for the present the great thing was to get to the cave as
quickly as possible. They had two clear hours before them in which to
make their search.

The tide was at its lowest, and there was a broad stretch of wet sand
between the sandhills and the sea. Wide shallow pools of water had been
left behind by the receding waves, while here and there lay long heavy
drifts of seaweed, shining darkly in the early rays of the morning
sunlight. The children splashed their way along, their eyes fixed on
the flagstaff hut. As they drew nearer they left the sea and steered
for the cave, the entrance to which was plain enough now that they knew
where to look for it.

"It's such a conspicuous sort of cave," Hugh said, "I don't see how
anyone could miss finding treasure unless it is buried very deep."

Caves have always a certain amount of mystery about them, but this one
was undoubtedly as ordinary looking a cave as one could find. It did
not burrow very far back into the cliff side, and what there was of it
was open to the daylight and contained no lurking dark corners. The
walls were rough and rocky but not high; the roof was, as Jerry said,
nothing particular, and the floor was of shingle and rather wet, as if
the sea, now so far away, had paid it a visit not so very long ago.
But, as the rocks and stones before the entrance were dry, it was
obviously not the tide which had washed the floor.

"It must be a spring or something," Hugh said; "let's taste and see--"
he stooped as he spoke and scooped up a handful of water, which he put
to his lips.

"Thought so; it's quite fresh and sweet--that's rather a find--jolly
useful for picnics, it will save us carting water about--by jinks!" he
exclaimed, looking round at the others with an expression of blank
dismay; "do you suppose _that's_ what we were to find to our advantage?"

They all stared hard at the shining wet stones, through which the
trickle of water was now plainly discernable. Then they stared round
the cave again. There did not seem to be a place where treasure _could_
be hidden. Moreover, there were traces of a not very remote picnic--the
dead ashes of a gipsy fire, one or two crumpled-up balls of paper, some
broken bottles!

"That's it," said Jerry at last. "It was probably the people who had
that picnic--those broken bottles are the same as the one we found.
They played cock-shy with them, and then thought it would be a lark to
chuck one into the sea. What a jolly old sell!"

"We've had a nice morning anyhow," said Prudence, "and the spring
certainly _will_ be an advantage when we've got used to it not being a
sewing-machine and bull-dogs and things."

"I somehow don't believe it is the spring," said Mollie thoughtfully,
still staring about her. "There is something about the way that paper
is written; it doesn't look like the writing of the sort of person who
plays that kind of joke--and of course it would be meant for a joke.
Let's all stand quite still in a circle back to back, and each stare
hard all over the bit of cave that comes in front of us, and see if
there isn't a sign of some sort."

They agreed that there would be no harm in trying this plan, though the
boys' hopes were small. Dick and Jerry were uneasily conscious that
they were "the sort of person" who would have thought that bottled
message an excellent joke--to play on someone else!

So they stared. They even circled slowly round so that each part of the
cave was examined with meticulous care by six pairs of eyes in turn.
But it was all in vain; the cave only seemed to become more and more
ordinary the longer they looked at it.

"There's not a place where you could hide a thimble," Prue said sadly,
"let alone a treasure."

"What's that?" Grizzel called out suddenly, pointing to the broken
bottles in the corner.

After all there _had_ been a dark spot, and with the brightening
daylight that dark spot had all at once lighted up, and there lay a
bottle, the very twin of the one they had found in the sea, red
sealing-wax and all. The boys made a dive for it, but Dick stopped
abruptly and held back the others: "Grizzel saw it first, let her open
it too," he said.

Grizzel advanced, and picking up the bottle held it to the light--yes,
there was a message plainly to be seen.

"I think one of you had better break it open," she said; "I'd probably
cut my fingers."

Hugh solemnly knocked off its head and drew out the paper. It was
written in the same round, clear handwriting:

  IF THE PERSON WHO FINDS THIS
  BOTTLE WILL ASK FOR MR. BROWN
  AT THE DUKE'S NOSE, HE WILL
  HEAR OF SOMETHING TO HIS ADVANTAGE.

"Why the dickens couldn't they have said that first shot?" Jerry
exclaimed.

"I expect Mr. Brown will tell us to go to the Duchess's Toes and hear
of something to our _dis_-advantage," said Hugh sarcastically.

"If we are going to look for Mr. Brown we will have to hurry," said
Prudence, who had gone to the entrance of the cave and was scrutinizing
the beach; "by the look of the shadows I should say it was a good bit
after seven. In not much more than an hour we must be sitting down at
breakfast tidy and brushed."

They found when they came out that there was a footpath up to the
Duke's Nose--a very steep and boulder-strewn path, but quite a possible
one for them all; so they went for it manfully and womanfully and were
soon at top. But alas! the door of the hut was closed and locked; no
one answered their repeated knocks, and they came to the unwilling
conclusion that the place was empty.

"Blow!" said Dick at last. "Why couldn't the old treasure-hider put his
old treasure in an easier place?"

"If he had, someone else would have found it," Mollie remarked
sensibly, "and anyhow it is a lark searching for it."

At that moment a man's figure could be seen coming towards the hut; he
was swinging a billy-can by the handle.

"That's the man I saw last night," exclaimed Grizzel; "I expect he is
Mr. Brown."

The man was rather surprised to see six children congregated before his
hut door at that hour of the morning. Prudence was pushed forward as
spokeswoman. "Please, are you Mr. Brown?" she asked, in her most polite
voice.

"I am, miss. Anything I can do for you?"

"We found this piece of paper," she said, showing the latest message to
him, "and we brought it to you like it says."

The man grinned broadly--he had a nice grin, the children
thought--"You've found it, have you? Well, that beats me! That's darned
clever of you. Our little Missie will be no end bucked to hear that bit
o' news; she was mighty taken up with her messages, she was. You'll
have to wait a bit, though. I can't leave this place before twelve
noon. You be on the beach above where that big hump o' seaweed is at
twelve-thirty to-day, an' you'll see--" the man broke off and grinned
again.

"What?" asked several excited people at once.

"That's tellin'," said Mr. Brown; "just you wait an' you'll see
somethin' to your advantage, same as it says here."

It was terribly hard to have to leave the treasure at this thrilling
stage, but there was nothing else to be done, especially as it was
getting late, and they would have to hasten their steps as it was, if
they were to reach home in time for a proper tidy-up before breakfast.
Mamma was very particular about many things, but she was particularly
particular about coming to table with clean hands and freshly brushed
hair.

       *       *       *       *       *

They were at the trysting-place long before half-past twelve. Nobody
had a watch, but the Australian children had a device of their own for
telling the time.

"You stand on one foot," Hugh explained, "and twirl round with your
other big toe in the sand--like this. That makes a circle to fit your
own shadow. Then you stand in the middle and see where the shadow hits
the circle. And then you guess the time near enough for all practical
purposes. It's quite simple."

"Did you invent that sort of clock yourself?" Mollie asked
deferentially.

"There wasn't much to invent," Hugh replied modestly; "it's on the same
principle as a sundial. I only applied my legs."

"God invented Hugh's legs and the sun," Grizzel said; "Hugh only put in
the squiggly toe."

"But that's just it," Jerry argued; "like Newton and the apple. The
simple things are there all the time, and no one sees them till the
right person comes along. I think that's a jolly ingenious idea. You'd
have to know exactly where due north was, of course, and you'd have to
have the sun. That's the trouble in London; the sun just slops about
the sky, and half the time you can't see him at all."

The children now twirled round and round like dervishes, making
shadow-clocks till there were hardly any shadows left, as the sun rose
higher and higher in the heavens. It also became warmer and warmer; so
they decided to sit in a row with their backs to the sea and their eyes
firmly fixed upon the hut, determined not to miss the sight of the
treasure for a single moment.

"Let's play 'I went to market with a green umbrella'," Prue suggested,
"and we can think of all the things the treasure might be." The green
umbrella had been to market about twenty times when a voice behind them
made them all start.

"Well, now--to be sure!"

And there was Mr. Brown, with nothing in his hands--no sack upon his
back.

"How _did_ you come, Mr. Brown?" Mollie asked. "We looked and looked."

"Grand sentries you'd make--all lookin' one way," said Mr. Brown.
"Suppose you look at the sea for a change."

Six pairs of eyes turned to gaze at the sea--and six pairs of feet
instantly began to run, for there, drawn up on the beach, was a boat!

"How's that for a tidy craft?" asked Mr. Brown. "Is she pretty shaped?
How do you like her paint? Look at her nice little oars. Eight, she
holds--nice-sized party eight is, sort o' cosy an' cheerful."

The children looked from the boat to Mr. Brown and back again. Nobody
thought any more of stilts or sewing-machines, or even of bull-dogs;
the only thing on earth worth having at that moment was the wonderful
boat around which they were standing. Her outer dress was of bright,
dark green, with a scarlet line round the rim; inside she was pure
white. A little railing of delicate iron scroll-work ran round her
stern, and across it curved a board, with the boat's name in scarlet
and gold: _The Belle of Canada._

"Do you mean--" Hugh began, but he was too overpowered to finish,
because it was all very well to talk about cameras and things in the
abstract, but that such a thing as a real, life-sized boat--and such a
beautiful boat too--should fall into their hands in this casual way was
too wildly improbable to be true.

But it was true, nevertheless. That lovely little boat was really
theirs!

The way it happened was this, Mr. Brown explained: the year
before--while the Campbells were in the hills--a little Canadian girl,
visiting her Australian relations, had come with them to stay in the
very cottage the Campbells were in now. She was very ill when she
arrived. The doctors feared consumption, and said that open air all day
long was the best medicine she could have. So the boat was bought--"and
a fine price they paid for her too," Mr. Brown remarked--and the little
girl was half her time on the sea, and got so sun-burnt and sturdy that
before she left she was rowing the boat herself--"an' you'd never know
she'd had a mite the matter with her," Mr. Brown said. When the time
came for her to leave she took a fancy to give her boat to some other
children, so that they might have as happy a summer with it as she had
had. But it wasn't enough to give it in the usual way of giving--she
made up the plan of the message in the bottle, which she left with Mr.
Brown.

"But I wasn't in no hurry," he said. "I kep' my eye on the cottage
children. The last lot were a rampagin' set o' young ruffians, smashin'
everything they set hands on. I soon saw that this chap was a different
sort altogether, hammerin' an' tinkerin' away at his raft, and careful
of her as if she was a lady--he's the sort for little Missie an' me, I
said to myself, so in the bottle went, only an hour or two before you
found it."

"And suppose no one had found it, or the other bottle?" Dick suggested.

"Not much danger o' that, with six pair o' sharp eyes an' inquisitive
headpieces around," Mr. Brown answered, with a laugh. "The only bit I
wasn't sure about was the Duke's Nose, for not many knows it by that
name; but little Missie would have it--said it was more romantic like,
though what's romantic about a duke's nose it beats me to see--just
like any other nose, I don't mind bettin'."

"Hugh says Jerry's nose is like a duke's," Grizzel said, so that all
eyes were immediately fixed upon poor Jerry's nose.

"Jolly romantic, especially when I have a cold in the head!" he
exclaimed.

"Well now, jump in, the lot o' you, an' I'll row you along to your Pa,"
said Mr. Brown.

"Do you know Papa?" asked Grizzel, whose round blue eyes had never left
Mr. Brown's face since he began his story.

"Yes, I know your Pa. There ain't many round here that don't. Now
then----"

As Mr. Brown talked he had pushed the boat out, with some help from the
boys, and had lifted the girls in. Now he took the oars, and, with a
few powerful strokes, he sent the boat skimming over the sparkling blue
sea.

All the children could row, more or less, but Mr. Brown gave them some
useful hints. "An' you mustn't ever go far out to sea by yourselves,"
he said, "nor yet too near the rocks except it be a calm day like
to-day. Remember that a good sailor won't ever run his ship into danger
unless he can't help himself, no more than he would his wife. If you
want to go a regular excursion to the Port or such, you can always get
one of us to go with you, unless, of course, your Pa can take you. But
you'll get plenty of fun, an' learn a lot too, playin' round
here--you'll learn the feel o' the sea, which is something quite
different from rowin' on a river. An' don't you be givin' the raft the
go-by," he added, addressing himself to Hugh; "there's a lot goes to a
raft an' you never know when your knowledge o' handlin' one may come in
useful. That's a tidy one you've made, but it wants a bit o' tar. I'll
bring some along one o' these days an' show you how to use it--there's
your Pa wavin' to you."

An excited party of children landed on the beach and told their story
to Papa, whose consent had to be won before the lovely boat was really
theirs. He was as delighted as they were themselves, and an expedition
was planned for that very evening, to include Mamma and her guitar.

"If you will give me the little girl's address I will write and tell
her all about how we found the bottle," Prudence said to Mr. Brown,
"and we will all write and say 'Thank you' for her _beautiful_ idea."

"She's back in Canada now," Mr. Brown answered. "She'd be mighty
pleased to hear from you."

It was difficult to sit down soberly to boiled mutton and batter
pudding after these exhilarating adventures, but it had to be done, and
after dinner the girls had to "sit quietly with their needles" for an
hour; but at last tea-time came, and evening followed, and the whole
family except Baby embarked upon the first voyage in _The Belle of
Canada_. It was delightful to float about on the moonlit water and
listen to Mamma's lovely voice. She sang a Canadian boat-song, in
honour of the little hostess in far-away Canada:

  "From the lone sheiling of the misty island
  Mountains divide us, and the waste of seas--
  Yet still the blood is strong, the heart is Highland,
  And we in dreams behold the Hebrides.

 "Fair these broad meads--these hoary woods are grand;
  But we are exiles from our father's land."

Silence fell upon them all after that. Mamma's white hands dropped from
the guitar and slipped under Papa's arm; Prudence thought in her dreamy
way of the little Canadian; Mollie remembered the American soldiers and
their song; Hugh's mind was full to the brim of boats and rafts and
ships.

"Look here!" cried Jerry suddenly; "we're a good slice of our jolly old
Empire to-night--Great Britain, Australia, India, sailing in a Canadian
boat--there's another song we ought to sing----" he jumped to his feet
as he spoke, making the boat rock in the silvery water. "Come on!" he
sang:

  "Rule, Britannia! Britannia rule the waves!"

       *       *       *       *       *

"Oh, Jerry! _Why_ did you go and do that?" Mollie called out, as she
sat up and rubbed her eyes. "It isn't nearly time to wake up yet!"

"Indeed it is, you little lazy bones," Aunt Mary said, with a laugh.
"Goodness, child! You are beginning to look quite rosy and sunburnt!
Spraining your ankle seems to suit you. I think I'll sprain mine and
see if I can raise a complexion like that. It's as good as a visit to
the seaside."

"Ah!" said Mollie.




CHAPTER V

The Gold-diggers or The Miracle


"DEAR MOLL,

"This is exactly what happened yesterday. Young Outram says that it is
very important for us to keep notes, in case the Thingummy Society
should want to know all about it one of these days.

"To begin with I was late for breakfast, so I grabbed your letter and
stuck it in my pocket, along with a roll, and bolted. Everything as
usual till about 2.30. Bibs was trying to knock some maths into our
heads, which I call pretty hard luck on a chap who has crawled to the
top of his left wing while shots were dropping round like hail. He
looked fairly fed-up. It was tremendously hot and my head ached, and
Young Outram had a rag-nail on his first finger which he said was
causing him frightful agony, when I suddenly remembered the roll and
found your letter. So we ate the roll and read it, I mean we read your
letter and ate it--anyway, we were looking at that photograph and
thinking that the boy looked a pretty decent sort, and wishing we were
him instead of ourselves when suddenly he appeared! He really did, I'm
not making this up. At the window just where the parrot was yesterday.
And the funny thing is that we don't usually sit at that desk for
maths, but the other room was having something done to it, so we did
yesterday. The chap stared at us, and Y. O. said, 'Hullo!' and he said,
'Hullo!' And Y. O. said, 'Who are you?' And he said, 'I'm a
Time-traveller!' And we said, 'What the dickens is a Time-traveller?'
And he said 'Like to come and see?' And we said, 'You bet your hat!'
And he said, 'Hold my fist and shut your eyes!' So we did, and next
thing we knew we were floating on our backs in the sea as calm and cool
as cucumbers, and the raft was bobbing about, and you know the rest. At
least, we suppose you do. That's what we want to know. Hugh told us the
Time-traveller yarn. It sounds a fairly tall tale, but we've heard
taller from chaps who were at the front. The point is, how can we go
back? London is a rotten hole in this weather.

"Your affec. bro.,

"DICK."


Mollie read this letter as she ate her morning oatcake. So her spell
had worked! The question was, would it work again? For obviously she
could not continue sending away photographs without causing remarks to
be made and questions asked. She did not see how she could do anything
more herself; they must just trust to luck, at any rate till she saw
Prudence again.

It was rather odd, when she came to think of it, that she had not
questioned Dick yesterday about how they had got over. But the fact was
that, after the first surprise of seeing them, she had forgotten. "I
forget about Now and only remember Then," she said to herself. "There
is so much to do the time simply flies and comes to an end far too
soon."

When she arrived downstairs that morning she found that her sofa had
been carried out of doors. It was a lovely day. Here in the country the
leaves still retained their early freshness, and from where she lay she
could see the downs, mistily green against the pale morning blue of the
sky. The rose-garden, with its smoothly mown grass paths, its pergolas
and arches, its standards and dwarfs, was coming into bloom so fast
under the June sunshine that Mollie thought she might almost see a bud
swell into a full-blown rose if she watched steadily enough. Caroline
Testout had already dropped some of her pink blossoms, which lay
scattered about the path in rosy patches, reminding Mollie of Grizzel
and her shells. She smiled to herself and then sighed, as her eyes
wandered from the rose-garden to the long red brick wall beyond, where
the sweet cherries grew. The fruit was turning scarlet under an orderly
net, which had been put up to protect it from the greedy little birds.
Everything was so tidy, she thought. No one would dare to pull off
those rose petals for scent-making purposes, nor to gather those
cherries merely to play at making jam with. Chauncery was lovely and
spacious compared to the house in North Kensington, and the well-kept
gardens were a pleasure to look at, but----

"I don't think England is big enough to hold children," she said to
Aunt Mary, who sat near, reading the _Aeroplane_, with some neglected
needlework lying in her lap.

Aunt Mary looked up with a surprised expression: "I am sorry you are
feeling so crowded up," she said. "Would you like me to move a little
farther away?"

"No, thank you," Mollie answered, with a laugh, "I have room to breathe
even with you there. What I mean is----" she paused for a moment,
wrinkling her brow, and then went on: "London isn't like this; it's
full of poky holes. Ours is bad enough, but from the train you can see
much, much worse places than ours. Sometimes I wonder how people can
live in them, and yet Mother says they are not the worst. There is
simply no room for children to play, so they play on the streets and
sometimes get killed. The Girl Guides are going to help, but it takes a
long time "--Mollie shook her head thoughtfully--"and there is so
little time too; at home I never have any time to do anything except
work or Guiding. I have no time to think in, except after I am in bed,
and I go to sleep so horribly soon." She shook her head again and
sighed deeply.

"Well, that's one good thing to be thankful for," Aunt Mary said
cheerfully, dropping her paper and taking up her sewing, "and there are
the holidays for thinking in. I wouldn't think too much, if I were you.
You'll get plenty of that when you are old," and Aunt Mary sighed too,
as if she did not find her own thoughts very gay affairs always.

"But I want to think of things now that will be useful long before I am
old," Mollie persisted. "There is such a _tremendous_ lot of things to
be done, Aunt Mary. And things have to be thoughts long before they are
things. I expect the person who invented aeroplanes thought about them
for ages and ages before he began to make one."

"I haven't the slightest doubt of it," Aunt Mary agreed, "but you are
wandering from your subject, which was the smallness of Great Britain."

"No, I'm not--at least not exactly, I want to make Great Britain
greater, and I can't think of a way. I should like to have plenty of
room and plenty of time."

"That won't be an easy problem for you to solve, my lambkin," Aunt Mary
said. "As a matter of fact there is room enough, in the country, but
people prefer to live in towns. You will have to hire a pied piper and
pipe all the babies into the fields."

Mollie shook her head, her eyes resting again upon the distant downs.
"I don't know," she said seriously, "but something will have to be done
some day, Aunt Mary, besides play-centres. They are good, but they
aren't enough. Too many children die. Mother goes to a children's home
once a week, and she took me once. You should just see those babies.
And they could be such dear little things too. Why--" Mollie hesitated
for a moment and then went on, "Why don't more people go to live in
Australia and Canada? The maps are full of empty spaces."

"Ah, Mollie my dear, that's not so easy as it sounds," Aunt Mary said,
folding up her work and rising to her feet. "There are all sorts of
complications when it comes to shifting camp from the Old World to the
New. But perhaps--perhaps if everyone in this old country could be
persuaded to think of the children first--! In the meantime I must go
and get lunch for my particular child."

Probably Aunt Mary's mind was running on those sick babies of the poor
as she played to Mollie that afternoon, for her fingers wandered off
into the tune of a song she had not heard sung since her childhood:

  "'T is the song, the sigh of the weary:
  Hard times, hard times, come again no more!
  Many days you have lingered around our cottage door--
  Oh, hard times, come again no more!"

Mollie lay listening, the unopened album in her lap. She was drowsy
after her morning in the garden, and thought she would rest her eyes by
closing them for five minutes. "A little darkness will do them good
after all that sunshine," she murmured to herself.

It was very pleasant lying in the quiet room, on that broad sofa,
listening to Aunt Mary's soft music. Mingling with the sound of the
piano was the droning hum of a foolish bee, who had got on the wrong
side of the window and was now making vain efforts to fly home again
through the glass. A delicious scent came from somewhere--perhaps from
the syringa bushes growing just outside the open window. Mollie's lazy
eyelids fell over her eyes--"Just five minutes--"

"Five minutes," said the clock. "Ten minutes. Fifteen minutes. Twenty--"

"How soundly the child sleeps," Aunt Mary whispered, peeping in a
little later to look at her niece. "These afternoon naps are the best
thing in the world for her overworked little brain. I wish I could fill
Chauncery with children, and let them run wild in the garden." She
felt, not for the first time, how duty seemed to pull two ways at once,
for there were many things she would fain have done had her duty to her
mother not stood in the way.

Someone else came and looked at Mollie.

"Asleep!" Prudence exclaimed, with a smile. "Never mind, I can manage.
It is getting very easy."

       *       *       *       *       *

Mollie did not open her eyes the moment she woke up; she lay still,
enjoying the warmth, the sweet scents, and the balmy air, so different
from the cold winds of early spring. Presently she yawned, stretched
herself like a sleepy kitten, and finally sat up and opened the lazy
eyes.

"Good gracious!" she exclaimed, "Prue must have come and found me
asleep. I wonder where she is."

She rose to her feet and looked about her as usual. She was in a place
quite different from any she had seen hitherto. At her back stretched
an orange-grove--there was no mistaking it, for the trees, planted
evenly in rows, were laden with thousands of oranges, ripe and unripe,
while the waxy white blossom with its golden heart still grew in
clusters among the glossy dark leaves, sending its perfume out with the
warm wind far and near. Before her, divided from the grove by a narrow,
roughly fenced road, Mollie saw a wide, undulating plain, its surface
covered somewhat scantily with coarse grass and occasional clumps of
bracken. There were gum trees, large and small, their thin blue-green
leaves hanging limply from the grey boughs, and throwing but little
shade on the ground beneath. Some distance away a creek wound between
wide banks of shingly sand and low boulders. At the nearer end a gum
tree had fallen across the stream and had been left to form a crossing.
Mollie thought it did not look a very inviting bridge to cross on a
dark night.

It looked hot out there in the open. Mollie turned back to the
orange-grove, cool and inviting, and had almost decided to explore in
that direction, when the sound of voices fell upon her ear, and,
turning again, she saw a group of children crossing the scrub land in
front. In spite of wide hats and sunbonnets they were easily
recognizable. The boys were walking in front and carried spades and
pickaxes over their shoulders; the two girls were loitering along
behind, and carried between them a large round article which might be a
tub, a cradle, or a sieve. They were heading for the creek, and, as
Mollie watched, Hugh lifted his hand and pointed towards the fallen log.

"Dick and Jerry are first to-day, and they have got over without any
help from me," Mollie said to herself, with a tinge of jealousy, which,
however, she quickly got rid of--jealousy not being part of a Girl
Guide's equipment. She put her hands up to her mouth in the way she had
seen the Australians do, and shouted "Cooo-eeeeeee!", with a creditably
sustained shrill note at the end. Her call brought the children to a
standstill, and they waited for her to join them.

"What are you going to do?" she asked.

"We are going to dig for gold," Prudence answered, as they started
again. "Hugh says there is gold in the river-bed. The boys dig, and we
sift the diggings in this cradle, which rocks in the water so that all
the dirt runs out and the gold stays in--at least, it would if there
were any to stay. Last year we dug for ever so long, but never got any
gold at all. We found some pretty crystals, though."

"I found a purple one just like an amethyst," Grizzel joined in; "but
Mr. Fraser said it wasn't. Then I found a white one like a diamond, and
a green one. I polished them with all my might, but I lost them except
the green one. I hid it in a tree like the person who shot an arrow
into the air, only my tree is a gum instead of an oak. I expect it is
there still unbroke if it hasn't been stolen by a magpie or a blackie."

When they reached the creek the boys laid down their tools, and Hugh
studied the lie of the land with an intent expression.

"We'll begin about here," he decided presently. "Last year we dug
higher up, but I shouldn't wonder if gold silts downwards and collects
in a hollow. This is about the hollowest place I have found yet. The
soil in these old alluvial beds is often auriferous," he went on; "Mr.
Fraser says this was once quite a respectable river, but years of dry
seasons shrank it up. It will never go quite dry, because there is a
good spring up there, and that is why he chose this place for his
oranges. Irrigation is absolutely necessary for an orange-grove."

"Are we allowed to eat the oranges?" Dick asked anxiously, as a breath
of scented wind blew across him.

"Oh yes--as many as we like. But we must dig first," Hugh replied
firmly, lifting his spade as he spoke and planting it upright in the
sandy soil. "First we must peg out our claims. There's a good deal of
luck about gold-digging, of course, but you'd better look round and
choose your own spot."

After some consideration the children decided to throw in their lot
with Hugh, who was the only one among them who knew what gold looked
like in its raw state.

"You can keep half and the rest of us will go shares in the other
half," Dick suggested, quite forgetting in his interest that
Time-travellers cannot carry profits with them on their travels. The
plan sounded fair, however, so they agreed to it.

"It is possible that we may not find _gold_," Hugh said, as he marked
out a square within which to begin operations; "but we are pretty sure
to find something. Australian soil is extraordinarily rich in products.
I should think it must be about the richest soil in the world."

"I hope it won't be ants," Prudence said nervously. "I do hate ants."

"Aunts!" exclaimed Jerry, not understanding Prue's Scottish-Australian
pronunciation. "Why the dickens should we find aunts in a river-bed? Do
they all drown themselves out here? Aunts can be jolly nice too--or
jolly nasty, according to circs."

"They're _always_ nasty here," Grizzel said emphatically, "I never met
a nice ant in my life. They bite like red-hot nippers."

"Bite! Oh, I see," said Jerry, "you mean black aunts," vague memories
of _Uncle Tom's Cabin_ and Aunt Chloe floating in the back of his
brain. "I thought you meant white aunts. I didn't know that aborigines
were as fierce as all that."

"I have never seen any white ants here," said Prudence, who called the
native Australians blacks when she spoke of them and a-borry-jines when
she read about them. "Uncle Jim says there are a great many in India,
and they eat his books."

Jerry looked bewildered. "Of course there's lots of 'em in India," he
said, "but I never heard of them eating books."

"I expect your uncle means that they devour novels," suggested Mollie.

"No, he doesn't. He says they eat a tunnel through all his books from
one end to the other. And they stuff up the keyholes."

"Your uncle's aunts must be quaint old birds then," Jerry said
unbelievingly.

"But they aren't birds at all, they're _ants_," cried Grizzel.

A loud cackle from Hugh, whose grin had been growing wider and wider,
now interrupted the discussion: "Ho, ho, ho! One of you is talking
about aunts--your Aunt Maria--and the other is talking about ants--the
beasts that go to the sluggard," he exploded. "You _are_ a pair of
muffs! He, he, he!"

"'Go to the ant, thou sluggard'," Mollie quoted slowly. "Oh--_Jerry_--"

It took them some time to recover from this little misunderstanding.
"Next time I see Aunt Mary--bites like red-hot nippers--oh dear!"

"Well, come on and dig now," Hugh ordered at last, twisting a cord
neatly round his last peg as he spoke. "If you go on laughing like that
you'll soon begin to cry, and this mine will never get started."

Thus adjured they rolled up their sleeves and set to work. Pickaxes
were of no use in that sandy soil. The boys used their spades, and the
girls carried the turned-up sand to the creek, washing it with the
utmost care in the cinder-sifter. But their efforts met with no
success. Neither gold nor anything else, except pebbles, rewarded their
toil.

"It's always like that," Hugh said at last, sitting down on the edge of
the hole they had dug. "Gold is the most gambly stuff imaginable. We
know a lady who was as poor as a washerwoman one day, and then at
breakfast one morning she got a letter to say her goldmine shares had
struck a reef, and she got so rich she simply didn't know what to do
with her money. She came to see Papa about it. She was an old maid, so
naturally there wasn't much she wanted. You never know who is going to
be rich and who poor, with a goldmine. Some of these pebbles are quite
valuable," he continued, running a handful of shingle through his
fingers, "there are amethysts and opals and topazes in some river beds.
I have never found one myself, but I've picked up some pretty good
crystals."

"I think I'll go and look for mine," said Grizzel. "I hid it in a tree
near here. I am tired of gold-digging, and my feet are hot. I shall
dabble them in the creek and eat an orange."

She got up as she spoke and went off towards a particularly
gaunt-looking tree. Its trunk had split open, showing a hollow large
enough to hold several people; for some distance around its roots
protruded through the ground like old bones. Grizzel disappeared into
the hollow trunk, whence she presently emerged with an air of triumph.
"I've got it safe and sound. Now I'm going to get an orange."

Jerry eyed the orange-grove lovingly. Digging is thirsty work.

"Let's all go," said Hugh. "Orange juice is one of the most restorative
things in the world; if we eat enough we will be ready to make a fresh
start in half an hour or so. Very likely we shall have better luck next
time."

It was hot, and the change from the glaring sunshine into the cool
dampness of the orange-grove was very pleasant. The beautiful fruit
hung invitingly from the branches with a colour and fragrance unknown
to London shops. There were many varieties, and the Australian children
wandered critically from tree to tree.

"I'm not sure whether I like navels or bloods best," Hugh remarked,
"but perhaps on the whole, for pure refreshment, navels."

He stopped, as he spoke, before a tree on which grew oranges larger
than the London children had ever seen in their lives--immense, smooth,
opulent-looking globes of rich golden yellow. For a time silence
reigned, while six people covered themselves with juice, "Like the
ointment that ran down Aaron's beard," Grizzel said, and the ground in
the neighbourhood assumed an auriferous hue that made the inventor sigh.

"I wish we could find a place where nuggets lay about like that," he
said rather pensively; "it would be awfully jolly."

"It would be," agreed the others, "most awfully jolly."

"I think I'd as soon have oranges as gold," Grizzel said reflectively,
looking down at the peel-strewn earth. "Think how nice it would be if
you were in the very middle of a scorching desert, and dying of thirst
like the men in _Five Weeks in a Balloon_, to find a lovely orange tree
covered with juicy oranges. It would be nicer than finding gold."

"You do talk silly slithers," Hugh said derisively. "Who ever found a
beautiful orange tree in the middle of a desert? You _might_ find gold
and bribe an Arab to give you water."

"You _might_ find an orange tree in an oasis," Grizzel said huffily. "I
am going to bathe my feet in the creek. Go and look for your old gold.
You won't find it."

"All right, Carroty-cross-patch. You won't get any if we do," Hugh
replied politely.

"Don't want it, Goggle-eyed-guinea-pig." Grizzel got up and walked off,
her sun-bonnet dangling down her back and her red curls waving over her
head. No one took any notice of these little amenities. No one
remembered that the ointment which ran down Aaron's beard was like
brethren dwelling together in unity--a good and pleasant thing. They
were all brothers or sisters and accustomed to such mellifluous modes
of address.

"We'd better go back and dig in a new place," said Hugh; "the light
will begin to fade before very long."

They gathered up their orange peel and buried it tidily, and then
stepped out of the cool grove into the hot sunshine with some
reluctance. But gold-digging is not mere play, as Hugh reminded them.
If you want to find a large nugget you begin by looking for small ones,
and the search undoubtedly entails some hard work.

The new diggings were no more productive than the old. The boys worked
industriously, digging widely rather than deeply. It was decidedly
monotonous work, and Dick began to think that for pure excitement
gold-digging showed up poorly beside football. Their backs ached, their
hands were blistered, and the shingly pebbles got into their shoes.
They were hot and thirsty, and into the minds of four of them crept a
suspicion that Grizzel had chosen the better way of spending the time.
They could see her sitting on a boulder, her feet in the water and her
hands occupied with her crystal, which she was rubbing in a leisurely
way on a stone, as one sharpens slate-pencils. The afternoon wore on;
the sun seemed to gain in speed as he slanted down the sky, and tree
shadows lay about the ground like long thin skeletons. A herd of cows,
on their way to the milking-shed, trailed lazily past the weary
diggers, reminding them of tea-time with its refreshing drinks and
soothing cream and butter.

Jerry stood up, dropping his spade and stretching his arms above his
head.

"I'm tired," he announced. "Let's hang our spades on a gummy tree and
sit beside Carrots for a bit. I'd like to dabble my little feet too,
before walking home."

Hugh assented somewhat reluctantly; he would have preferred to continue
digging while daylight lasted. "We've done _something_," he said, as
they took off their shoes and stockings; "we've found where gold isn't,
and that's rather important."

"I know lots of places where it isn't," said Dick, putting his hands in
his pockets, "I could have told you that without digging for a whole
afternoon, if I'd known it was important."

"Of course I mean when it isn't where it might be," Hugh amended,
taking no notice of Dick's gibe. "It's what Papa calls the process of
elimination. You've got to do it with almost everything worth having
really. You've only got to look at this river bed to see there's pretty
sure to be something worth having there--in fact I know there is. It
may not be gold, but it's something."

"How do you know it?" Mollie asked curiously. "I don't see anything
particular about the river bed. It doesn't look half so likely as the
gold patch in the road beside your cherry garden."

"I can't tell you how, but I do. Just you wait and see. To-morrow I
think I'll try the old place again. I shall go on trying till I find
something, either gold or precious stones. There might even be
diamonds; there are in some river beds."

"Look," said Grizzel, holding out her hand with the stone in it, "I
have rubbed a bit off one side at last. If I rub long enough it will
come bright all over."

A small, roughly eight-sided crystal lay in the palm of her hand. Six
sides were dull and colourless, the remaining two sides were clear and
transparent.

"I rubbed my bit off exactly opposite the bit that was clean already,"
she went on, "so that I could look through it at the sun." She turned
the crystal over and held it up as she spoke. A dazzling flash of
pale-green light darted out, as though an unearthly finger were
pointing at the sun. It was gone in a moment, and the stone looked dull
and rough as before.

"What was that?" Grizzel asked, in a startled voice. "Is it going to go
off like fireworks?"

"Give it to me," said Hugh, taking it from Grizzel's unresisting
fingers. He held it up as she had done, and again the pale-green light
flashed out. He moved it slightly from side to side, and with his
movements the green light took on the shining hues of a rainbow.

"It's like a diamond," said Prudence in an awed voice.

"It _is_ a diamond," cried Hugh. "I knew it! I knew it! I said so!
Grizzel found it in the place we dug last year. Grizzel found it, but
it was me that looked for it, because I knew! Where this one was there
will be more. _We have found a diamond bed!_"

"If Grizzel hadn't rubbed it so hard you would never have known,"
Prudence reminded him. "She rubbed that bit for _weeks_ last year."

Hugh turned the crystal over and over, examining it on every side.
"Diamonds are terrifically hard," he explained more calmly. "It takes
months to cut and polish a diamond properly. Grizzel's pretty good at
sticking to a thing; I'll say that for her. I'm glad the first diamond
was found by her."

"Well--it will take me some time to polish it all over," Grizzel said,
with a sigh. "If I did nothing else all day long but rub it on a stone
it would be clean in about six months."

"Who does this land belong to?" Jerry asked. "Is it your father's?"

"Oh, no--it's Mr. Eraser's. For miles around the land is his. That's
the man we are staying with."

"Then the diamond is Mr. Fraser's, not yours or Grizzel's," Jerry
pronounced.

There was a short silence. "Mr. Fraser said I might have all the gold I
found," Hugh said, in a doubtful tone.

"I expect he guessed that you wouldn't find any," Jerry responded. "But
a diamond like that is a different thing. If it really is a diamond it
is probably pretty valuable--perhaps it is worth a hundred pounds. You
can't walk off with a hundred pounds without telling."

"Well, we'll show it to him. Of course we'll tell him we have found a
diamond bed," Hugh answered.

"It's my diamond," Grizzel declared. "I found it and I rubbed it and it
slept under my pillow, and I hid it and I love it and it's mine. I
don't care what anybody says."

"Mr. Fraser will most likely give you lots of money for it," Mollie
suggested soothingly, "and then you can go and buy something nicer than
a diamond."

"I don't want lots of money. I want my own dear little stone that I
rubbed myself," Grizzel repeated, tears starting to her eyes. "Why
should Mr. Fraser take my stone and chop it all up with horrible sharp
grinding knives? It's mine. I found it."

"You'll have to show it to him first," Hugh said decisively, "whether
you found it or not. If you keep it you will be a thief, and perhaps
you will be sent to prison."

"Then I'd rather let it go back to its home in the river bed," Grizzel
cried passionately. As she spoke she snatched the crystal from Hugh's
hand; there was a flash of green light--a splash--and it was gone.

She turned and ran, sobbing and crying. Prudence followed, bent upon
comforting her. Mollie looked scared, Jerry laughed, Hugh shrugged his
shoulders:

"Just like a girl!" he said. "It doesn't matter; we'll find more. But
that was a good diamond; I'd have liked to show it to Mr. Fraser. We'd
better collect our things and go home."

Three of them turned away, but Dick lingered behind. His quick eyes,
trained to watching the flight of balls of all sizes from footballs to
golf-balls, had taken accurate note of the spot where that little
splash had been. There were still circles widening round it. The creek
looked shallow just there.

"If I scooped up the sand carefully _now_, as likely as not I'd
retrieve that stone," he said to himself. "Grizzel is a decent little
kid; she'll be sorry by and by, and, besides, the old chap ought to
have his diamond if it really is a diamond. Diamonds aren't so jolly
easy to come by as Hugh seems to think. That white stone is almost in
the middle of the circle--I'll make for that."

"Don't wait for me," he shouted after the others, "I'm coming in a
jiff." He waited till he saw them turn their somewhat dejected and
preoccupied backs upon the scene of the late disaster, and then
transferred his attention to the creek. At the point where he stood the
water was comparatively deep; it had evidently formed a channel for
itself, helped, probably, by a slender waterfall which dropped over a
large boulder on the higher ground some distance beyond the fallen tree.

"I can crawl over that and drop off at the shallow part," he thought,
"I'll have to look sharp or the circles will be gone."

He rolled up his already short flannels and started. The tree was by no
means steady--it rolled and shook under his weight; but, as the worst
that could happen would be a good soaking, he did not worry overmuch,
and soon slid off into the shallow stream. As he had predicted, the
water there barely reached to his knees. He scrutinized the
ever-widening circle, now faint and irregular, and, calculating the
distance from its edge to its centre, he fixed his eyes intently upon
the white stone and cautiously waded towards it, his movements in the
water breaking up the last traces of the circle. When he reached the
white stone he halted.

"It was here, almost to a T, or my name is not Richard Gordon," he
muttered, and, stooping carefully, he scooped up a double handful of
shingly sand from the river bottom. He stood up, letting the water run
away through his tightly closed fingers. As he bent his head to examine
the pebbles left in his hand, a sunbeam darted over his shoulder--there
was a flash of pale green.

"Got it, by jinks!" he chuckled exultantly. "First go-off! Good for
you, Richard, my boy--your eye is pretty well in and no mistake. Come
out of that, my young diamond, and let's have a look at you--you'd do
A1 for heliographing with."

Dick soon scrambled to shore, and stood for a moment looking after the
others, now far ahead. "I'll put him back in the hollow trunk where
Grizzel hid him," he decided, with a twinkle in his eyes. "It might be
rather a lark--"

A sharp sprint brought him up with the other two boys, who were
awaiting his arrival seated on the top of a slip-rail, Mollie having
gone in search of Prudence and Grizzel.

"What on earth have you been doing?" Hugh demanded. "Have you been
swimming?"

"I was only having a look round," Dick answered, with a wink at Jerry;
"I thought I'd do a little prospecting on my own."

"Why didn't you tell me, you beast?" Jerry asked, linking his arm into
Dick's affectionately.

Dick answered by a friendly punch on the head. "Who is Mr. Fraser?" he
asked Hugh, settling himself in his place on the rail.

"He is a man we know," Hugh replied rather vaguely. "He owns all this
part and is as rich as a nabob, but he isn't married, so he lives up
here all alone, with two or three Chinese servants in the house. He
once lived in China. He's awfully fond of gardening, and pictures, and
that sort of thing, like my mater. He's a merchant and he owns ships.
He's a great friend of the pater's, and he comes in about once a week
to hear the mater sing, and they yarn away about home and spout poetry.
But he is quite a jolly sort of chap when you get him alone. His house
is called Drink Between, which wouldn't be a bad name for a book if you
wanted to write one."

"Jolly good name for a pub, if you wanted to keep one," Jerry remarked.
"I shouldn't wonder if he got it from some old coaching inn of the
olden times--though, of course, we are in the olden times already, if
it comes to that--fairly old, at any rate."

"No, he got it from a place at home where Prince Charlie once had a
drink. When the girls are here he gets in a couple of women to look
after them. Other times he only has his heathen Chinee lot, and jolly
good they are! That is, of course, if you like stewed puppy and bird's
nest," Hugh added solemnly; "I love 'em myself."

"Adore 'em," Jerry said, smacking his lips. "Never lose a chance of
having puppy-tail hash when we can get it, do we, old son?"

"Rather not," Dick replied. "Remember those bird's-nest tarts our old
woman at the tuck-shop used to make before butter got so scarce?
Scrumptious!"

The appearance of the girls interrupted these flights of masculine
fancy. Grizzel still looked subdued, but the tears were dried, and she
was listening politely to Mollie's tuneful advice to "Pack your
troubles in your own kit-bag, and smile, smile, smile". Hugh shouted to
them to hurry up or they would be late for tea, and soon the little
party was under way again, as cheerful as if diamonds had never been
heard of. They were now in sight of Drink Between; a square, solidly
built house, with a wide veranda and balcony on three sides of it,
completely hidden at present under a pale-purple drapery of wistaria.

"It looks like an amethyst," Mollie said admiringly, as they drew near.
"I never saw such a purple house as that before."

The inside of Drink Between was entirely different from any of the
other Australian houses which Mollie had been in. They entered by a
side door which opened straight on to a narrow stairway. The girls
climbed up to their bedroom, a large airy apartment opening on to the
balcony.

"Where are your father and mother and Baby?" Mollie asked, as they
washed away the remains of oranges and gold-digging.

"Papa and Mamma have to go and meet an immigrant ship to-morrow, so
they aren't coming up till afterwards. And Baby and Bridget are with
them."

"What's an immigrant ship?" asked Mollie.

"A ship full of immigrants," Prudence replied, brushing out her curls
with conscientious care. "Immigrants are people who get their passage
out for nothing, or for very little, and then they go to work here.
Mamma is getting a new cook because ours is going to be married. And
Papa likes to meet the Scotch immigrants and say welcome to Australia
to them. Bridget was an immigrant, but she says she will soon be
Australian."

"I see," said Mollie thoughtfully. "Are they ever married? I mean--do
children come with their parents?"

"Yes, lots of them. Are you ready, Mollie? The boys are getting
impatient. I can hear them growling."

Feeling very fresh and clean in white muslin frocks with pale-blue
sashes, the girls descended by a different and much wider staircase
than the one they had gone up by. They stepped off the stairs straight
into a large hall, or living-room, which apparently occupied half the
floor of the house, for on two sides it opened on to the veranda, and
on the third side into a large bamboo house; the fourth wall was
unbroken but for one door. The room was painted white, and the floor
covered with fine white Chinese matting, over which lay a few Eastern
rugs, their once rich and glowing colours now dimmed by time and the
tread of generations of feet. Through the wide-open French windows
could be seen the long, graceful streamers of wistaria, hanging from
the arched boughs round the veranda like a lace veil. Against this
background grew masses of pale-pink and blue hydrangeas, with their
flat fragile flowers and broad leaves. The bamboo house was given
wholly to ferns, over which a fountain was playing, and under the fine
spray the green fronds glistened as freshly as though they grew in the
heart of an English wood.

The sun was now setting, and its crimson glow shone through the mauve
wistaria, filling the room with an opal-coloured light which made
Mollie think of fairyland. It fell with a peculiarly pleasant effect
upon a round tea-table spread for tea. She had never seen such fine and
snowy damask, such shining silver, or such delicately transparent china
cups and saucers. Even Grannie's well-kept table paled before the
exquisite freshness of this one. As for the food part--there was a
crystal bowl of yellow clotted cream, a plate of gossamer balls which
were probably intended to pass for scones, a twist of gold which was
most likely meant for bread, and dishes of preserves unknown to the
English children--tiny green oranges in syrup, scarlet rose-berries,
and jellies like amber and topaz, looking as though some of Hugh's
precious stones had been cooked for his tea.

They were about half-way through this beautiful meal when there was a
sound of footsteps on the matting, and a Chinese servant appeared,
bearing a large iced birthday cake set on a silver tray.

"Hullo, Ah Kew! What you gottee there?" called Hugh, under the
impression that he was speaking pidgin-English to perfection.

"Master talkee to-day b'long he burfday," Ah Kew replied. "He talkee
my, wanchee cook makee one piecee burfday-cake." He set the cake down
in front of Prudence as he spoke.

"Welly good, Ah Kew, Master b'long quitey righty," said Hugh
approvingly. "Cook makee jolly-good cakee, me eat jolly-good cakee.
Cook pleased, me pleased, cakee pleased, all jolly-welly pleased."

Ah Kew smiled a slow and mysterious smile, his black eyes closing up
under his slanting eyebrows, and his blue-capped head nodding. He
glanced over the tea-table.

"Tea b'long all plopper?" he asked anxiously. "S'pose you wanchee more
can have plenty more."

"No, thank you, Ah Kew, me eatee more me bustee," Hugh replied
politely. Ah Kew nodded his head again and departed, his pigtail
flapping against the long skirts of his blue cotton coat.

Prudence cut the beautiful cake and distributed large slices all round.
No grown-up person was present to make sensible remarks about not
eating too much, which was a good or a bad thing "according to circs"
as Jerry would say.

The children were all tired after their hard work and excitement; Mr.
Fraser was not coming home till late, and had left a message to say
that he expected to find everyone fast asleep in bed when he got back;
so, after a tour of exploration round the house and its immediate
neighbourhood, they went off to their rooms, and soon most of them were
asleep.

Not all of them, however. Whether it was the cake, or the change of
air, or the strange bed, or still stranger circumstances, or all
combined, it would be hard to say, but it seemed to Dick that the
longer he lay in bed the more wakeful he became. The thought of the
diamond began to worry him, and soon assumed gigantic proportions in
his mind. Suppose it got lost. Perhaps it was worth a hundred pounds,
as Jerry had suggested. Suppose a magpie flew off with it. It might be
worth more than a hundred; perhaps two hundred pounds. What if a
blackfellow stole it, or the tree fell down in the night, or got burnt
up. It is true that none of these things had happened during the months
in which it had lain there before, but _then_ no one had known that it
was valuable. It would be just like luck, or rather unluck, if
something happened this particular night. Dick's knowledge of diamonds
was so small that it could be hardly said to exist, and he now began to
have nightmarish visions of huge sums of money--thousands of pounds
perhaps, lost through his folly. To be sure, no one knew that he had
put the diamond back in the tree. But he knew himself, which was the
main thing. He tossed from side to side restlessly. A new thought
perplexed him. How could anything he did or left undone matter now,
seeing that he wasn't going to be born for another thirty years? He
belonged to the future, and the future could not influence the
present--at least, he supposed not, but funny things did happen.
Anyhow, this was _his_ present for the moment, and he had his usual
irritating conscience.

He got out of bed at last and went to the window. There was such a
flood of moonlight that out-of-doors was almost as light as day. Why
not slip into his clothes and scoot down to the bottom of the
scrub-land, and collect that diamond? It would be better than tossing
about in bed, and afterwards he would go calmly to sleep. The
difficulty would be to get out of the house. Probably Ah Kew was on the
watch for his master, and, if he saw Dick, would remark "no can do", or
words to that effect.

Dick went to the edge of the balcony and looked over; it was not very
far from the ground, but it was too far to jump. How about the wistaria
boughs? They looked pretty tough--he decided to try, and if he
fell--well, he had smashed himself up before this more than once, and
no doubt would do so again. A few tumbles more or less wouldn't make
much difference to him, especially, he reflected, as he was bound to
get back to 1920 somehow or other. He could hardly kill himself now if
he tried.

He reached the ground with nothing worse than a few scratches to his
credit, and set off along the path by which they had come in the
afternoon, keeping well in the shadow of the hedge in case Ah Kew's
beady eyes should be on the outlook. So long as he was within the
grounds of the house he felt confident and cheerful, but when he
reached the slip-rail and looked over into the land beyond he felt some
of his courage oozing away.

It looked eerie, that strange, unfamiliar country, in this white light.
There were dead trees standing here and there, and their pale trunks
took unpleasant shapes--they might conceivably be something else than
trees--not ghosts, of course; there were no such things as ghosts. All
the tales he had ever read about Australia suddenly started up in his
mind--tales of deadly snakes, of bushrangers, of blackfellows, who had
methods of their own of doing you in. One might go through a good deal
without being actually _killed_. Now that he came to think of it,
Australia in the 'seventies was a wildish sort of place--in some parts
at any rate. He wished that he was surer where he was--how far away
from civilization. He supposed that Ned Kelly and his gang were still
at large.

But, of course, he could not go back. He stepped cautiously from tree
to tree, keeping to the black shadows as much as possible. He could
hear the sound of that little waterfall quite distinctly, and see the
moonlight on the rippling shallows of the creek--now he could see the
gum tree he was making for--he had taken particular notice of a crooked
bough--what on earth was that?

A wild piercing shriek from somewhere beyond the creek brought him
suddenly to a standstill, his heart in his mouth. Undoubtedly a woman
was being murdered or tortured. Blackfellows, probably, as Ned Kelly
made a point of not hurting women--at least so it said in _Robbery
Under Arms_. Dick wondered what exactly the blackfellows had done to
the woman--and there was the blood-curdling shriek again!

He stood still. After all, why not leave the diamond till daylight? He
had been a silly ass to imagine all that rubbish about it, and a much
sillier ass to leave his safe bedroom and come out to this wild and
desolate spot all alone. If he had brought Jerry--

Ah, Jerry! There had been that affair of Jerry's eldest brother and the
guns. Ten wounds. Both legs shot off. "Stick it out, you chaps." The
very last words he spoke in this world, sweeter in Jerry's ear, Dick
knew, than the finest poetry ever written. He gathered himself together
and went on. It would never do to begin a habit of _not_ sticking it
out. For, wherever he was, he was always Dick Gordon to himself--a
person for whom he wished to have a considerable amount of respect.

He wished that the orange grove, so cool and lovely by day, did not
look so dark and mysterious by night.

At last! Here was the old tree. Now for it. He stepped round, prepared
to enter the empty hollow regardless of possible snakes or blacks, when
he heard a sound that made the hair rise on his head and the back of
his neck feel queer, for it was unmistakably a child crying inside the
tree. The child of the murdered woman, he thought. So the blacks _were_
near--perhaps inside the tree at this very moment. The idea flitted
across his mind that there was an extraordinary difference between
reading about a thing and experiencing it. As the child's sobs
continued he shrunk together--he would rather meet an enemy in the open
and be shot at twenty times than face these savage and mysterious
blacks--and then he suddenly decided that, if there were a child there,
he must go and look for it and do his best, blacks or no blacks.

But at that very instant the crying stopped and turned to speaking:

"Please, God, let there be a miracle. Just this once, God. I'm sorry,
God; I'll be good if you'll make a miracle. Only this once. I am very,
very sorry." The crying began again.

"Grizzel!" exclaimed Dick, his fears all vanishing like darkness before
light. "How on earth did she get there? She'll be frightened into fits
if she sees me." He moved back a little distance and stopped to think.
The best plan would be to call her softly, he decided.

"Grizzel! Where are you, Grizzel? Are you there, kiddy? It's Dick
calling. Are you in your tree? I'm coming--look out!"

[Illustration: DICK STARTED VIOLENTLY]

He came up to the hollow opening and looked in. It was Grizzel sure
enough, in her little dressing-gown, her face blotched with tears and
her curls crushed and tumbled. Dick put an arm round her: "Don't cry,
kiddy; the diamond is all right."

"Oh, Dick, I did hope there might be a miracle," she sobbed, burying
her head on his shoulder. "I'm so sorry. My poor little diamond, all
those years and years shut up in the ground! It had just one look at
the sun and then I threw it back. Oh, Dick, if God would only make a
miracle this _once_ and put my diamond back!"

Dick felt a choky sensation in his throat as the thin little arm
tightened round his neck.

"It's all right, Grizzel," he whispered, "we'll find the diamond--let
my arm loose a moment." He groped round, and in another minute the
stone was in his hand. He turned it over, and a pale-green ray darted
out, more unearthly than ever in the moonlight.

Grizzel gave a cry as he laid it on her palm. "My diamond! The miracle!
I _thought_ it would happen! I just _thought_ God hadn't forgotten the
way! Oh, Dick, I am so glad! I am so glad! My own dear little diamond!"

Dick had not the heart to explain at the moment that there had been no
miracle, and Grizzel was far too preoccupied with her own joy and
relief to wonder what had brought Dick to her tree just then; and
besides, he thought vaguely, one never knows.

"We must be going in," he said; "it's ever so late and we'll be
cotched. How on earth did you get out?"

"Down the back stairs. The others were asleep, but I could not sleep,
thinking of my little diamond in the cold river--" at that moment a
wild shriek rang out again, and Dick started violently.

"It's only a curlew calling to his friend," Grizzel said, creeping out
of the hollow. "They scream exactly like people being killed, but it's
only their way; they mean to be kind."

Dick drew a long breath. A wild bird and a crying child! Suppose he had
gone back! Thank goodness he hadn't, but it was a near shave.

The boy and girl walked happily along, hand in hand. They had reached
the slip-rail and were climbing over, when a tall man appeared from the
garden of Drink Between.

"_Grizzel!_ What in the wide creation are you doing here at this hour
of night, or rather morning? Do you know it is nearly one o'clock? And
what are you doing, young man?"

"Oh, Mr. Fraser--it's Mr. Fraser," she explained, turning to Dick, and
such a confused tale followed, in which crystals, gold-mines, diamonds,
wickedness, and miracles were all jumbled together, that Mr. Fraser
decided that a glass of milk, a biscuit, and bed, had better pave the
way to a fuller explanation next day.

Ah Kew let them in with a wise smile and several nods of his head, and
soon both Dick and Grizzel were sleeping as soundly as the other four
Time-travellers.

"It is a green diamond," Mr. Fraser pronounced next morning, "but what
its value is we cannot tell until it is cut and polished. Then it will
belong to Grizzel, to have and to hold till death do them part. If you
really have found a diamond-mine, youngsters, something will have to be
done about shares. Who finds keeps, you know. We'll have the place
properly surveyed and see what happens. But don't begin counting your
chickens too soon--these Australian diamond-mines are tricksy things;
you never know how they are going to pan out. Wait a bit before you
plan what to do with your fortune."

Mollie, Dick, and Jerry suddenly felt very sad as they remembered that
they were out of this stroke of luck. Whatever happened, Fortune was
not preparing to smile on _them_, at least not in a way that would be
of any immediate practical use to them when they got back to London.
And a fortune apiece would have come in so very handy just now--just
forty years hence, that is. The boys made up their minds to investigate
this matter of fortunes in the colonies directly they got home.

Hugh tossed up his hat and caught it again: "We'll be jolly rich," he
cried. "The Mater will get her trip home, and the Pater needn't worry
about bills and subscription lists any more, and I'll get that
camera--oh, 'hard times, hard times, come again no more!'"

       *       *       *       *       *

Mollie sat up. The clock was still ticking minutes into hours, hours
into days, days into weeks and months and years.

"Oh dear," she said, "I do wonder--"

"Wonder what, my Molliekins?" asked Aunt Mary, preceding Hester with
the tea-tray.

"I wonder," Mollie repeated, and then began to laugh. "I don't suppose
you ever bit like red-hot nippers, did you, Aunt Mary?"




CHAPTER VI

The Grape-Gatherers or Who was Mr. Smith?


Aunt Mary had gone up to London to do some shopping, and when Mollie
came downstairs next morning she found Grannie installed in the
drawing-room, instead of in the morning-room as usual, with another old
lady who had come to spend the day.

"Mrs. Pell and I were at school together," she explained, as she
introduced her grandchild, "and that was not yesterday," she added, as
she settled Mollie in an easy-chair with the lame foot up on a
cushioned frame. "My dear husband used this when he had gout," she
continued, tucking a warm shawl round Mollie's bandages and large
bedroom slipper. "It was made in the village under his own directions,
and is most ingeniously constructed. Poor, dear Richard was such an
active man; he could not endure to lie on a sofa, and I had the
greatest difficulty in keeping him to his bed even when his attacks
were severe."

Mrs. Pell shook her head as she looked admiringly at the foot-rest.
"James was the same, he hated a sofa and would always sit in a chair.
Not that he was so active, but he was stout, and stout people are more
comfortable sitting up than lying on their backs."

Mollie coughed. She had either to cough or to laugh, which, of course,
would never have done.

"My dear, I trust you have not caught cold," Grannie said anxiously.
"Perhaps we should close the window. Your Aunt Mary has a perfect craze
for open windows, and I sometimes think there is a draught in this
room."

"No, no, Grannie," Mollie protested; "I have not got the least bit of
cold, and I love the open window; it is so warm to-day. It was only a
tickle; I get them sometimes--tell me about when you and Mrs. Pell were
at school, please."

The two old ladies smiled at each other over their spectacles.

"That was not yesterday," Grannie repeated. "You would think very
poorly of our school. We had no games, no gym-dress, no examinations
such as you have; but we learnt the use of the globes very thoroughly,
and we spoke French, so that we were not at a loss when we went to
Paris later on. Our dancing was much more graceful than the foolish
gambols with their ridiculous titles which you young people call
dancing nowadays. Fox-trot, indeed! And bunny-hug. And rag-time. I
never heard such names in my life! _We_ danced the Highland
schottische, and the quadrille, and Sir Roger de Coverley. And do you
remember your famous curtsy, Esther? And how Madame made you show off
on parents' day?"

"Indeed I do!" Mrs. Pell answered briskly. "I believe I could do it
now, this moment. I have been wonderfully free of rheumatism this year."

"Do, do," Mollie begged, overlooking the insult to her beloved fox-trot
in her anxiety to see a real old-fashioned curtsy.

Mrs. Pell laid her knitting on one side, rose from her chair, and
walked to the middle of the room. She shook her somewhat ample black
silk skirt into place, tilted her chin to an angle that gave her a
decidedly haughty expression, and stood facing Grannie and Mollie.

"You must imagine yourselves to be our beloved Queen Victoria and our
beautiful and gracious Alexandra, Princess of Wales," she said, looking
so elegant and distinguished that Mollie suddenly felt rather small and
shy, while Grannie, on the other hand, drew herself up into what was
presumably the attitude of Her late Majesty.

Mrs. Pell lifted her skirts with an easy turn of her pretty hands and
wrists, pointed a charming foot, so small that it made Mollie gasp, and
began to sink slowly down. Down, down, down she swept, her skirt
billowing out around her, her shoulders square, her head erect--down
till she all but touched the floor, and how she kept her balance was a
perfect miracle; then slowly up, with an indescribably graceful curve
of neck and elbows, till once more she stood erect, pleased and
triumphant, a pretty pink flush on her cheeks.

Grannie clapped her hands. "There, Miss Mollie! That was how _we_ were
taught to curtsy! There's nothing resembling a fox about _that_!" she
exclaimed, as Mrs. Pell took her seat again and resumed her knitting.

"It was perfectly lovely," Mollie agreed warmly, "but it does require
the right kind of skirt, Grannie. Did anyone ever topple over at the
critical moment?"

"Not that I can remember," Mrs. Pell answered; "but, of course, it
required a great deal of practice, and we did many exercises before we
got the length of our court curtsy. Do you remember Ellen Bathurst,
Daisy?" (How funny it sounded to hear Grannie called Daisy.) "And the
time all the brandy-balls fell out of her pocket? _How_ angry Madame
was!"

Of course Mollie had to hear about the adventure of the brandy-balls,
and from that the talk drifted to memories of old friends long since
dead and gone, whose names Mollie had never heard. It was a little
depressing, and her thoughts wandered away to the Campbells. She
wondered where she would find herself that afternoon, and then
remembered with dismay that Aunt Mary was away and there would be no
tunes.

But after lunch Grannie insisted upon the sofa as usual. "You shall
have your lullaby," she said. "Mrs. Pell and I are going to play duets.
We used to play a great deal together when we were young, and no doubt
our music is just the thing for sending you to sleep; it has a base and
a treble and some perfectly distinct tunes."

"Don't be sarcastic, Grannie," Mollie laughed, as Grannie bent to kiss
her. "I am sure it is beautiful music, and I like tunes myself. Jean is
the musical one of our family. She jiggles up and down the piano in no
particular key and calls it 'The Scent of Lilac on a June Day'."

"Well, well," said Grannie. "Times change. We are going to play
selections from _Faust_, with variations. Sleep quietly till tea-time,
my dear."

Mollie smiled as she listened to the selections. "--two-three,
_one_-two-three, _one_--" she could hear the treble counting. "I like
it," she murmured to herself rather sleepily--the morning's
conversation had not been exciting on her side. "I am glad I am not
James, for this is an awfully comfortable sofa--hullo, Prue! You _are_
in a hurry to-day! I was just thinking of a nap--"

Prudence did not answer; she was listening to the piano.

"Mamma sings that," she said. "It's _Faust_. I adore _Faust_. Don't
you? The waltz simply makes my feet go wild."

"I don't know it," Mollie confessed. "There are so many things I don't
know. Hurry up, Prue. I have had such an aged morning; now I want a
young afternoon."

"--two-three, _one_-two-three, _one_--" said Prue, taking Mollie's hand
in her own.

       *       *       *       *       *

It was very hot. So hot that Mollie could not be bothered to move. She
was half-sitting, half-lying on a bed of bracken, and around her she
could see the supine forms of four other children--Prudence and
Grizzel, Dick and Jerry--all lying in various attitudes of exhaustion
and apparently all asleep. Mollie was too lazy to turn her head, but
she could see that they were in a wood. The trees were the eternal gum
trees, with their monotonous grey trunks and perpetual blue-green
foliage. They were not growing in the neighbourly manner of trees in an
English wood, nor did they throw the cool green shade of elms and
beeches, but still in their own way they formed a wood. Mollie lay with
her back propped up against one of the grey trunks, her arms behind her
head, and her eyes blinking sleepily. She wondered where Hugh was.

"You _are_ a lazy lot," said a voice behind her. "I have been helping
in the vineyards all morning, and I've discovered a new kind of grape.
Mr. von Greusen thinks it might turn out to be a good champagne grape.
The carts are coming down; don't you want to see them?"

As he spoke Hugh came round and stood at Mollie's side. He wore a coat
of tussore silk, and his shirt was open at the neck; a wide pith helmet
was on his head, draped with a striped pugaree with broad ends hanging
down his back, and further decorated with vine leaves, which looked
rather droopy in the heat. He held out a hand to Mollie and pulled her
up, looking scornfully at the recumbent figures of Jerry and Dick.

"What a way to spend the time!" he exclaimed. "Their eyes tight shut
and their legs spread out like dried fruit. _They'll_ never discover a
new grape and have the most famous champagne in the world called after
them. Come on!"

Mollie had been listening for a little while to a distant rumble. It
now resolved itself into the uneven racketty grind of heavy cart-wheels
on a rough track. She went forward with Hugh, and, shading her eyes
from the glare of the sun, looked up the road which wound between the
trees of the wood they were in. As she watched, the carts came into
view round a bend of the track, and soon they were passing before her.
A team of six oxen drew each heavy load--such a load as Mollie had
never seen in her life. Grapes! Grapes piled up like turnips! They had
been thrown in by careless hands accustomed to working with rich
harvests, and here and there they hung over the sides, or dropped to
the ground, to be trodden under foot by indifferent beasts and weary
men.

The noise of trampling feet and creaking wheels disturbed the sleepers,
who, one by one, got up and came beside Mollie and Hugh. There was a
smell of hot grapes in the air, mingled with the smell of sweating
oxen, dry grass, and pungent eucalyptus, and the spilled juice of
grapes mixing with the hot dust of the track added a peculiar aroma of
its own to the general nosegay, as Dick described it. Mollie thought
that she could never remember smelling anything so thirst-inducing in
all her days. When the last cart had disappeared down the winding road,
and the noisy rattle had died away to a distant rumble again, Hugh sat
down on the trunk of a fallen tree and stretched his arms.

"Where are they going?" asked Dick, now wideawake and curious. "What
happens next?"

"They're going to Mr. von Greusen's place to be made into wine," Hugh
answered, "and it's a funny thing that however nice grapes are raw they
are all equally nasty when turned into wine. Some go sour and black and
you call it claret, and some go sharp and yellow and you call it
Frontignac or any other silly yellow name. What _I_ should like to
invent would be a kind of drink that tasted of grapes, fresh sweet
grapes. I'd add a dash of peach, and a slice or two of melon, and a
bottle of soda-water. And just enough powdered sugar. And ice."

"Let's go and get the things now and make it this very minute," said
Grizzel, tying on her sun-bonnet and making ready to start. "I'm _so_
thirsty."

"It's too late to-day, and besides I'm tired. There was a man up there
who wanted to know all sorts of things about the vineyards. Mr. von
Greusen was too busy to go round with him, so he sent me. He was
pleased with me for discovering that grape. The man's name is John
Smith. I think he is French."

Mollie laughed.

"What are you laughing at?" asked Hugh, looking all ready to be
offended.

"Oh--nothing--I'm not laughing," Mollie declared; "it's only a sort of
tickle; I get it sometimes."

"John Smith isn't exactly a French name," said Jerry. "Why do you think
he is French?"

"Because he called Mr. von Greusen a 'vigneron' and talked about
'hectares' instead of acres, and 'hectolitres' instead of gallons, and
he told me how vines were trained in Champagne and Burgundy and
Languedoc--all very Frenchy. Mr. von Greusen never talks like that. He
was interested in my new grape, but he's afraid it won't go on being
like it is now. He says it has about one chance in a hundred. I don't
mind betting you sixpence it _will_ be a champagne grape."

"I don't mind betting you sixpence he isn't French if his name is John
Smith," said Jerry. "You might as well call yourself a Scotsman named
Chung Li Chang."

"Oh--names! Names are nothing out here," Hugh said loftily. "We can
call ourselves what we please. This is the Land of Liberty. Besides,
Papa knows a Scotsman called Devereux, so there you are."

"Faugh!" said Jerry scornfully. "That's nothing! Everyone knows that
Scotland is full of French names."

"I suppose you are trying to say 'sfaw'," said Hugh coldly. "There is
nothing to sfaw about. Lots of Chinese people come to Australia and
call themselves John Smith if they choose."

"Faugh!" Jerry repeated.

"Sfaw!" said Hugh.

"Faugh--" Jerry began, but Dick interrupted.

"If you two asses are trying to say pshaw you are both wrong. I
happened to see it in the dictionary a few days ago and it is
pronounced shaw; it's a silly sort of word anyhow. No one uses it in
real life. Shut your jaws and stop your shaws and let's go and get a
drink."

"You can go," said Hugh, whose feelings were injured by the lack of
interest in his new grape. "I'm going to stay here for the present."

"Leave him alone and he'll come home and bring his grape behind him,"
sang Grizzel, as they set off down the hill. Hugh pretended not to hear.

"I wish I was a Red Indian," he muttered to himself, as he watched the
little party straggling down the road. "I'd invent some first-rate
tortures for Grizzel."

The children trudged along the track between the trees. The air was
full of dust stirred up by the carts, the sun seemed to grow hotter and
hotter every moment, "putting on a sprint before the finish", Dick
groaned, and the children grew thirstier and thirstier, till Mollie
felt she could hardly bear it for one minute more. Her lips and tongue
were dry and parched, and, although she kept her mouth shut, the dust
blew up her nose and down her dry throat. She felt as if the sun were
hitting her on the back between her shoulders, and her feet kept
stumbling over the deep ruts in the road. "A Guide's motto is never say
die till you are dead," she thought to herself. "There _are_ times when
I wish I were not a Guide, and this is one of them. 'Be Loyal.'
Oh--_bother_ Baden-Powell!" She held up three fingers to remind herself
of the Guide Law, and tried her best to smile. "How do the others get
on without it?" she wondered, watching Prue and Grizzel as they
loitered along just before her, Grizzel dragging weary little feet in
the dust. "I suppose they are used to it. Life in Australia isn't _all_
beer and skittles. I wonder what skittles are? If they are something
nice to drink I wish we had some here. Even beer would be better than
nothing. I _am_ a beautiful Patrol Leader! Walking behind and grousing
for all I am worth." She hurried her steps a little and made up to the
boys.

"Let's make a queen's chair and carry Grizzel," she suggested. "She
looks about done. We can do it in turns, Dick and me, then Prue and
Jerry."

"Righto!" said both boys at once.

"But you girls needn't do it," Dick added. "Jerry and I have carried
heavier loads than that, haven't we, old son-of-a-gun?"

"Faugh!" said Jerry, with a wink.

Fortunately for the boys, and for Mollie, whose pride as a Patrol
Leader was now up in arms, and perhaps most fortunately for Grizzel,
whose weight was by no means fairy-like, they were overtaken at that
moment by an empty cart, the driver of which pulled up and invited them
all to jump in. It was a relief to sit down, though the floor of the
cart was far from clean, and they were rattled and bumped like dried
peas in a basket. Mollie thought the road would never end, and began to
wonder at what stage of thirst delirium came on. But the longest lane
has a turning, and at last they came in sight of a white house standing
in the middle of an untidy sort of garden. The usual balcony ran round
it, but this time it was approached by a wide flight of steps leading
up from the drive in front. The cart stopped before a wooden gate, and
without a word Prue led the way to the back veranda, where a row of
canvas bags hung swinging from the roof. There were taps in the bags,
but Prue ignored them. She climbed on to the veranda railing, dipped a
tumbler into a bag, and handed it down to Mollie.

Oh, the exquisite joy of that drink! The water was deliciously cold; it
trickled over Mollie's parched tongue, irrigated her dried-up throat,
washed away the dust she had been inhaling, and in half a minute made
her feel like a newly-made-over girl.

"It is worth while being thirsty," she said, as she watched the others
revive under the same treatment. "I never knew before what a delicious
thing water is. I'd like some more, please."

"I wish we were all giraffes," Grizzel said, with a sigh. "I'd like to
have a throat a yard long and just sit here for ever letting cold water
bubble down its hotness."

"What about Hugh?" asked Jerry, his conscience smiting him now that the
irritating effect of heat and thirst had departed, and he reflected
that his slighting remarks were probably the cause of Hugh's absence
from this refreshing entertainment. "I expect he is the thirstiest of
the lot, seeing he is the only one who did any work."

"He had his billy-can of cold tea with him this morning," Prue
answered, "and if he _is_ thirsty it is his own fault for being so
huffy. Anyhow, he likes to practise enduring things; he says it is a
useful habit. The worst of it is he thinks everyone else should endure
too. I don't see the slightest use in making disagreeable things happen
ten times just in case they should have to happen once."

Hugh seemed to have forgotten his grievance when he got home. He
arrived along with Mr. von Greusen, who came to supper and talked to
Papa about vintages and vines, the prospects of the wine industry, the
possibilities of olive culture, and other subjects interesting to
Australians but a trifle dull for the English listeners. Presently,
however, the name of John Smith was introduced, and the boys pricked up
their ears.

"He asks many questions," said Mr. von Greusen, "but I do not think
that his heart is in the vineyard, as the heart of a man must be if he
wishes to make his wine world-famous. In your work, that is where your
heart must be, my children," he added, looking solemnly at the boys.

"And where do you think that the heart of Mr. John Smith is?" Papa
asked, with a twinkle in his blue eyes.

"Ah!" said Mr. von Greusen, shaking his head, "that know I not. The
heart of a young man who brings himself to Australia and whose feet
tread the vineyard while his eyes look far away, so that he repeatedly
trips over obstacles--where is it?" He shook his head again and hummed
in a melodious baritone:

  "Mdchen mit dem rothen Mndchen
  Mit den uglein sss und klar."

"Aha!" laughed the professor, "I have seen more than one young man come
to Australia to cure _that_ disease. But I don't recommend the
vineyard."

"I also not. Mr. John Smith should squat," said Mr. von Greusen.

Mollie laughed so suddenly that she choked, and brought a look of
disapproval upon herself from her hostess.

"You may go, children. Mr. von Greusen wishes to hear you play,
Prudence. Wait in the drawing-room till we come."

"Why did you go and laugh?" Hugh asked Mollie, as they trooped off to
the drawing-room and thence to the balcony to enjoy the cool breeze
which had sprung up. "I wanted to hear more about Mr. John Smith. I
don't understand German. Do you? Why did Papa laugh?"

"I don't know much German, but I think _Mdchen_ means girl," Mollie
answered. "I couldn't help laughing. Squatting sounds such a funny cure
for being in love." She giggled again.

"_Girl_!" Hugh exclaimed."_Girl_! I didn't think he was _that_ sort of
an idiot! He talked quite all right to me. No wonder Papa laughed. It's
much funnier than squatting, I can tell you. There's nothing to laugh
at in being a squatter. They're as rich as What's-his-name. Some of
them are millionaires. I wish Papa was a squatter--but he would be no
use on a sheep-run; you've got to be in the saddle all day, and keep
your eyes skinned for blackfellows half the night. John Smith looked
the very chap for it. _Girl_!"

"You needn't go on saying _girl_ in that voice," said Grizzel. "It
isn't the girl who is tumbling about with loverishness; it's Mr. Smith."

"What happened to the diamond-mine?" Mollie interrupted, feeling that
another squabble was in the air. "Did you make a fortune, and is this
house it?"

"Oh no--this house belongs to the Bertram Fitzherberts; they are
fruit-farmers. They have gone home for a trip, and they told Papa to
come here for the holidays, if he liked. Mr. von Greusen looks after
the farm for them. His vineyard begins a little farther up the hill.
The diamond-mine hasn't begun to pay yet, but it soon will."

"Do you like--is Mr. von Greusen a nice man?" Mollie asked
hesitatingly; it felt a little queer to be such friends with the late
(or the future, Mollie was a trifle mixed) enemy.

"Nice! Of course he is. Jolly nice, and jolly clever too. Why do you
ask?"

"Oh--I don't know--he is a foreigner, and sometimes foreigners
are--they're different."

"I don't know what you mean by different. Everybody is different from
everybody else. Anyhow, he isn't a foreigner here; he is an Australian."

"What happens if you go to war?" asked Dick.

"We don't go to war. We are too far away to fight against other
countries, and we will never fight each other, like America, and
France, and the Wars of the Roses. There's nothing to fight about and
there never will be. Of course--if we _wanted_ to we _could_. We'd be
first-class fighters if we weren't so peaceful. In fact," Hugh
continued, in a somewhat dreamy tone, "I have invented, or at least
thought about, several rather good things for fighting with--but they
will never be wanted in Australia. Papa says that if ever there was a
sweet and blessed country on earth it is Australia; it is full of peace
and goodwill towards all men."

The English children were silent. It was a good thing, they thought,
that people could not see into the future. Time-travelling was
certainly best done backwards. And yet--who would want to wipe out the
record of the Anzacs? Life was a fairly puzzling job, when you saw too
far ahead.

"Papa says," Grizzel repeated, "that Australian people ought to be the
goodest people in the world, because there is a beautiful Cross always
shining in the sky to remind us of the Beloved Son, like the rainbow,
so that we should never forget. But I do. Nothing in the world seems to
keep me from forgetting to be good just when I most want to remember."
Grizzel heaved a sigh from the very bottom of her sinful little heart.

Everyone's eyes turned towards the Southern Cross, conspicuous even
amongst the myriad stars shining and throbbing with tropical brilliance
in the velvety blackness of the sky. Mollie remembered that it
decorated the Australian flag, and she wondered if the sight of it had
made the soldiers homesick sometimes. They were _real_ Australians, she
thought to herself, born and bred in this sunny land. She could
remember a day when she had been walking with her mother in the Pimlico
Road--a dark, foggy, raw day in late autumn. They had come upon a group
of Australian soldiers standing round the door of a little
green-grocer's shop, and chaffing the good-natured shop-woman about the
quality of her fruit. Mother had stopped to speak to them. Mollie could
not remember exactly what had passed, but the men had been friendly and
communicative, and if they had groused about the English climate they
had some cause, she thought, considering the climate they had come
from; and they were cheerful about the war--she could remember that,
for their voices had followed them through the fog singing "Australia
will be there!" to what she had thought was a very lively and pleasant
tune--and yet Mother had tears in her eyes. It was a good idea, she
reflected, having that device on the flag, for it really was a bit of
home--for them. Poor men! Suddenly a new thought came into her mind.

"Look!" she whispered, laying a hand on Jerry's arm and pointing to the
Cross, "look! how brightly it shines! _Their name liveth for evermore!_"

Prue had slipped indoors and was playing a grave prelude and fugue of
Bach's. The three older people joined the children in the balcony, and
sat quietly listening till she had finished.

"That was very good, my child," said Mr. von Greusen, patting her
approvingly on the shoulder, "very good indeed. Next winter we shall
study together some piano and violin duets. And now perhaps your
_verehrte Frau Mutter_ will make some of her beautiful music for us.
Some Schubert songs, yes?"

So Mamma went in, and she and Mr. von Greusen both made beautiful
music, separately and together, which the audience in the balcony
enjoyed without troubling to understand, Prue being the only one among
them who loved music with her head as well as with her heart.

A sound of footsteps on the path below attracted the children's
attention. Someone was walking slowly backwards and forwards, obviously
listening to the music. As he passed through the long beam of light
sent out by the lamp into the darkness, he turned up his face for a
moment.

"It is Mr. John Smith," Hugh said in a low voice. "Shall I ask him to
come up, Papa? He looks lonely out there all by himself."

"By all means ask him to come up," Papa whispered cordially; "but go
quietly, my son, or Mamma will be out to know who is there, and our
concert will be over."

Hugh departed on his errand, returning in a few moments with a tall
figure in his wake, which he led to one of the long cane chairs
scattered about, and left to its own meditations.

The children looked curiously at Mr. John Smith, He appeared to be a
dark-haired young man, with a considerable amount of nose and chin and
a good many inches of leg. He sat very still, his eyes fixed on the
starry sky before him. There was, in his general outline in the
semi-darkness of the balcony, something vaguely familiar to Mollie--one
of those tantalizing impressions that come and go and refuse to be laid
hold of.

"But I _can't_ have seen him before," she said to herself; "it is quite
impossible." She looked away and tried to get to where she had been
before Mr. Smith came up--to that fairyland which the musician summons
up with a wave of his magic wand, especially perhaps for those who love
music mostly with their hearts, but the teasing little impression
disturbed her like an imp. Until the notes of Schubert's "Adieu" came
floating out into the night and carried them all on its wings up to the
very gates of Heaven.

The sound of the piano closing brought them back to earth. The
musicians stepped out on to the balcony.

"_Ende vom Lied,_" Mr. von Greusen said, as he left the lighted room
behind him, "and the end of the evening too, for me. I must be getting
home--hullo, Smith! Where did you come from? Am I to have the pleasure
of introducing you to Professor and Mrs. Campbell, or has someone
stolen a march upon me?"

"I brought him up," Hugh answered. "He heard Mamma singing and was
fascinated like flies and moths and things."

They laughed as Mr. Smith made his apologies while he joined in the
laughter. "You must come again," Mamma said, "and we will have a
concert properly prepared for you. And you will give me all the news
from home," she added, with the wistful note that was so often in her
voice, "unless you will come in now, and try our Australian wine?"

But the young man could not stay, and, after a few more words of thanks
and a grateful promise to come again at the earliest possible
opportunity, he went off with Mr. von Greusen.

"Who _is_ Mr. Smith?" Mollie asked, as they moved bedwards. "Doesn't
anybody know who he is?"

"He is a young man newly out from home, and that is enough for Papa and
Mamma," Hugh answered, with a yawn. "What does it matter who he is so
long as he is a nice chap."

"But suppose he was a bushranger in disguise and--"

"Suppose he is Nebuchadnezzar, King of the Jews," Hugh interrupted,
with another yawn. "I'm going to bed. We shall sleep tonight, with that
cool wind. Thank goodness."

Next morning found them again on the winding road which led up to the
vineyards. For three-quarters of the way it ran through the woods of
yesterday; then they left the woods behind and emerged on to a bare and
shadeless track on the hill-side, and ten minutes later they turned in
through the gate of the vineyard Mr. von Greusen had given them
permission to "browse" in, as he had expressed it. The English children
had never seen a vineyard in their lives, and their expectations were
inclined to be romantic and artistic. Large bunches of thin-skinned,
bloomy purple grapes, hanging gracefully down from something like a
pergola, was the picture they had formed in their minds. Mollie, it is
true, had seen grapes growing in the cherry garden, but they had been
so surrounded by cherry trees and other exciting objects that they had
not left any great impression.

They found the reality somewhat disappointing. Here were acres of
straight green lines hardly higher than gooseberry-bushes, and without
a single tree to break the monotony or to cast a welcome shade. The
bunches of grapes looked inviting enough, hanging among their
decorative leaves and tendrils, but they had not been thinned and
consequently were smaller than English hothouse grapes, while exposure
to wind and dust had removed most of their bloom; but, in spite of
their comparatively homely appearance, the children soon found that the
fruit tasted sweet and luscious as only freshly gathered, sun-ripened
fruit can do.

"This is Mr. von Greusen's experimental field," Hugh explained. "He
mostly grows different lots for different wines, but here he has all
sorts. We like these Ladies' Fingers; they go off in your mouth with
such a nice squelch."

"What happens if you eat his favourite experiment?" asked Jerry,
squelching his way diligently through a bunch of long, slender grapes
of a translucent pale-green colour.

"He says, '_Donnerwetter_! What see I?'" Hugh answered; "but he ties a
red worsted round his first-class experiments and then we know. He has
tied _all_ my new grapes up except the bunch he took home."

Now that the children were in the vineyard, and heard Hugh talking
learnedly of Black Portugals, Verdeilho, Shirez, and other
strange-sounding names, they were more reverential towards his new
grape, which _might_ be called Hughenne, or even, he generously
suggested, either Gordello or Campdonne.

"It has to have a winey sound, you see," he said, "or it wouldn't sell.
I think 'Gordello' sounds rather well myself."

It did not take very long to satisfy their appetite for grapes. The sun
got hotter, their eyes ached with the glare, and they decided to return
to the coolness of the woods and gardens lower down. The boys wanted to
go exploring; the girls were to be left to collect peaches and melons
for the new drink--which might bear the honoured name of Gordello until
the famous champagne was put on the market--which would then be ready
and cooling in the spring of the Fairy Dell by the time that the
explorers were weary of exploring. Thus planned the boys.

"Boys propose, girls dispose," paraphrased Mollie, as the three pith
helmets disappeared, after their owners had condescended to gather a
share of the Gordello-destined grapes and carry them part of the way
towards the Dell. "If Dick and Jerry want drinks they can jolly well
come and make them. _I_ am going to have a rest."

Prue looked a little shocked, but Grizzel heartily agreed with Mollie.
"I shall pull six peaches and one water-melon _exactly_," she said. "I
am tired and my legs ache, and I can't be bothered with Hugh and his
old Gordello."

A short walk down the road between the gum trees brought them to the
fruit gardens, where Mollie saw peaches that made up by their
magnificence for any hothouse elegance lacking in the grapes. Large as
apples, soft and downy as velvet, glowing with crimson and gold, they
were a perfect revelation of what peaches could be when they tried, and
Mollie could hardly bear to wait till they reached the Fairy Dell
before devouring one. But Prudence was firm.

"No, Mollie; not after all those grapes while you are hot and tired.
Come and get your water-melon, and we'll go straight to the Dell and
rest and eat peaches there. If you ate them now you might die all of a
sudden, and that would be _so_ awkward for Grizzel and me."

Mollie thought it would be more awkward for her, but did not argue. She
followed Prue obediently, finding her basket of grapes, plus six
peaches and a large water-melon, quite enough to absorb all her
energies. If only Gordello were an accomplished fact, she thought, it
would be very delightful. If someone else had made it and _she_ could
find it "cooling in the spring", as the boys expected to do, it would
be extraordinarily delicious, and the more she thought of it the more
delicious it became in her fancy. Poor boys! She was sorry for the
disappointment awaiting them. Australians seemed to be a strenuous lot
of people; no wonder the Australian soldiers were so brown and chinny.

Her meditations on chinny Australians lasted till they reached the
Fairy Dell, the sight of which chased every other thought from her
head. Surrounded by she-oaks and native cherry trees a smoothly curved
hollow lay at the foot of a rocky declivity, its sides clothed with
ferns almost startlingly green amidst the dried-up grass which covered
most of the country around. A silvery cascade of water fell down the
rock at the far side, its fine spray blown by the wind over the little
hollow, looking in the sunlight like the veil of a fairy bride. Mollie
recognized the delicate fronds of maidenhair growing in clumps here and
there, and the edge of the pool at the bottom of the hollow was fringed
with wild forget-me-nots.

The children scrambled down and seated themselves in a shady spot,
untying their sun-bonnets and holding their hot and dusty faces towards
the filmy veil of foam.

"It is heavenly," Mollie said, with a long sigh, as she sniffed up the
cool scent of the damp ferns. "I don't wonder you call it the Fairy
Dell."

"It is Mamma's favourite spot, and we often have picnics here," said
Prue, hanging her sun-bonnet on a branch of she-oak that spread above
them. "There's the water all ready, you see, and there's a place up
there where we can light our fire. Mamma sketches, and we bring our
books or we hunt for wild flowers; it is always a nice place to be in.
Now we can eat our fruit." She produced a knife from her basket and cut
a melon in halves. Its delicate pink flesh and black seeds called forth
more enthusiastic admiration from Mollie.

"Let us arrange all the things among the ferns," she suggested, "and
gather some forget-me-nots to put beside that pink melon; then the
purple grapes; then the peaches--isn't it _pretty_, Prue?"

Prue nodded her head; she was speechless with melon, and soon the other
two were following her example; and melon was followed by peaches.

Then Grizzel jumped to her feet. "There is a cache here," she said.
"Papa often pops something in for a surprise when he passes this way.
I'm going to look; there might be a pencil there, and I want to draw
that fruit."

She soon returned, carrying in her hand a small basket, which yielded
up two books, a small sketching-block, and a box of chocolates. "You
can have the books," she announced, "one is _From Six to Sixteen_, by
Mrs. Ewing, and the other is _Twenty Thousand Leagues under the Sea_,
by Jules Verne."

Mollie, being the guest, got first choice and took Jules Verne, turning
the pictures over with much interest as she compared the _Nautilus_
with the submarine of 1920.

"I do think," she said emphatically, helping herself to a large
chocolate-cream with entire disregard of both past and future, "I do
think that your father is a perfect _peach_."

Grizzel glanced up from her drawing to the still-life study before her.
"He is more the shape of a water-melon," she remarked.

Mollie laughed.

"Be quiet, Grizzel," Prue said angrily. "How can you speak so
disrespectfully of Papa? You should be ashamed of yourself."

"I'm _not_ disrespectful," Grizzel answered indignantly. "I think it is
a beautiful shape."

Mollie laughed again.

"You _are_ disrespectful," Prue repeated, turning very red. "Papa does
the dearest, sweetest things, and all your thanks is to make Mollie
laugh at him. It is horrible of you, and I don't call it very nice of
Mollie."

"I'm not laughing at your father," Mollie said; "I wouldn't dream of
doing such a thing. I'm laughing at Grizzel. She is so funny."

"I'm _not_ funny," said Grizzel, turning as red as Prudence, "and if
you laugh at Papa for being partly the shape of a water-melon, I'll
laugh at _your_ father. Your father is an unripe olive and your mother
is a bitter almond," she added vindictively.

But if she expected Mollie to be insulted she was disappointed, for
that young person went off into fits of cackling giggles which she
vainly tried to suppress. At last she rose to her feet.

"I've got the giggles badly," she spluttered out. "I get them
sometimes. I think I had better go away for a little till I am better.
I _really_ am not laughing at your father. I think he is a perfectly
lovely father."

"Then you shouldn't call names," said Prue, still very red. "How would
you like me to call your father an apricot?"

"I shouldn't mind in the least," answered Mollie, giggling worse than
ever. "You don't understand. I'll go away, and I'll explain when I am
better."

She seized her sunbonnet, tucked her book under her arm, climbed up the
side of the ferny dell, crossed the track, and ran into the wood on the
farther side, leaving Prue and Grizzel to finish the squabble between
themselves.

"We have eaten too much, that's what's the matter," she said to
herself, as she slowed down to a walk and the giggle became less
severe. "This hot sun all the time makes one feel crossish."

She came to a halt at the foot of a hollow gum tree, and stooping a
little she peered within. It looked shady and cool, its floor powdered
with decayed bark mixed with dead leaves--quite clean enough, she
decided, to sit upon and rest until her giggles had finally subsided.
She crept in, snuggled down comfortably, opened her book, and soon was
deep in the adventures of Professor Arrownax, Ned Land, Captain Nemo,
and the rest.

The shadows swung slowly round, the sun climbed higher and higher, and
the day grew hotter and hotter, but Mollie, skimming along the bottom
of the sea in the _Nautilus_ was oblivious of heat. She was walking in
the submarine forest of the Island of Crespo, treading on sand "sown
with the impalpable dust of shells", when the sudden cracking of a
sun-dried branch near at hand startled her and reminded her that time
was passing. She closed her book, crept out of her tree, and set off
towards the Dell.

"I wish," she said impatiently to herself, "that Time would find
something new to do. His one idea seems to be to pass. He may fly or he
may crawl, but he is _incessantly_ passing."

She stood still as she spoke and looked before her. Surely the trees
were growing more closely together than they had seemed to do; their
tall grey-white trunks repeated themselves in a most bewildering way,
and right in her path lay a fallen giant which she was perfectly
certain she had not passed before.

"Bother! I have come the wrong way," she said, turning round and
retracing her steps. "I remember now, there were some trees with rings
cut round their trunks--there they are."

She reached the ringed trees, turned her back upon them, and walked
straight on. But she came to a dried-up creek which she had not seen
before. She could not have missed seeing it, for it was too wide to
jump. And there were more ringed trees.

"I can't be far from the Dell, that's one thing certain. I'll coo-ee."

She coo-eed her best and shrillest, but no answer came. There was no
sound but the occasional scamper of some small furry animal or the
unhomely call of an Australian parrot or magpie. All around her the
monotonous grey trunks stood, as much alike as the pillars of a
town-hall, and overhead the blue-green leaves stirred languidly in the
warm wind. Mollie was standing, though she did not know it, on primeval
forest land.

What she did begin to realize was that she was lost.

"I _can't_ be far away," she repeated to herself. "I wasn't running for
five minutes. The point is, how am I to find the way back. Everything
is so difficult in this upside-down place; I haven't the least idea
which is north and which is south; nor which way the wind blows, nor
how the shadows fall, nor _anything_; and if I go the wrong way I will
only get farther and farther from the Dell. The best plan really is to
sit down and wait till someone comes. Someone is sure to look for me
sooner or later; Dick and Jerry will, anyhow." She looked about her
again in search of inspiration. Sitting down and waiting was not a
cheerful prospect. Dick and Jerry might whisk away home and leave her
behind. Or she might merely wake up suddenly and find herself in the
Chauncery morning-room, safe but dull, or--just supposing she didn't!
Supposing that she couldn't get back without Prue, and that she turned
into an interesting case for the What's-its-name Society, to be read
about in learned books!

"I might try climbing a tree," she thought, gazing round in search of
something climbable. But the tall, smooth trunks were discouraging;
there were few with boughs within her reach, and the few there were
were too low to be of any use as observation posts. She sat down and
resolutely opened her book. "Never say die till you are dead," she
repeated, firmly fastening the Guide's smile on to her face. "I'll
read, and coo-ee every third page."

But she no longer walked in the submarine forest; she only sat in a
wood and read about other people doing it, lifting her eyes from the
page every now and then, and turning her head uneasily from side to
side, feeling very lonely in that great, still place!

What was that? A magpie or a human whistle? "--two-three,
_one_-two-three, _one_--". Someone was whistling the air from _Faust_.
Mollie sprang to her feet and coo-eed with all her might and main. The
whistling stopped short, and there was an answering shout in a man's
voice. Mollie coo-eed again.

"Hi! You'll have to come to me," the man shouted; "I can't come to you.
Tied here by the leg."

It is not an easy thing to locate a sound in the open air, and though
Mollie had had some practice in the course of her Guide work, it was
only after several shouts on the man's part and experiments on hers
that she at last found herself standing beside Mr. John Smith, who was
sitting on the ground with one bootless leg stretched out before him.

"I am glad to see you," he said to Mollie. "I have sprained my ankle
rather badly, and was just wondering what to do next. There seemed to
be nothing for it but to crawl all the way home, and the prospect was
not pleasing."

"I am glad to see you too," said Mollie. "I am lost."

"Lost!" exclaimed the young man. "Oh no, you aren't. I have a compass,
and it is not more than a couple of miles or so to Silver Fields, von
Greusen's place. I'll show you how to use a compass, and you will be my
good angel and go to Silver Fields and ask them to send a horse along,
and I will be grateful to you for ever."

"I know how to use a compass, thank you," said Mollie, feeling greatly
relieved, "and I will go to Mr. von Greusen's place if you tell me
where it is; but first I will bandage up your foot and make it feel
easier. I have learnt First Aid. May I take that thing off your hat for
a bandage?"--as she noticed the pith helmet and pugaree lying on the
ground.

"My pugaree? Good idea! I don't know what First Aid is precisely, but
it sounds appropriate. Do you mean you can fix a bandage?"

"Rather," said Mollie, comfortably conscious that she was a First-class
Guide and a bright and shining light in this particular line. "How did
you sprain your ankle? I suppose you--" she stopped short. She had
almost said that she supposed he had tripped over an obstacle in a fit
of loverishness. "I suppose your foot just went. That's what mine did."

"I caught it in a rabbit-hole," he answered, "the floor of Australia
seems to be perforated with them. Why didn't you coo-ee sooner?"

"I did," Mollie answered, as she unwound the pugaree and took off her
patient's sock, "I coo-eed ever so often--oh, dear me! that _is_ a bad
foot! I'm afraid you'll be laid up for ever so long. Why didn't _you_
coo-ee?"

"I did," answered Mr. Smith, eyeing the badly swollen and discoloured
ankle ruefully. "I coo-eed ever so often too. I suppose we mistook each
other for magpies. Next time I'll try a good English shout. Now, what's
to happen? D'ye mean to say that I'm to be stuck up in Silver Fields
for goodness knows how long with only my own thoughts for company and
nothing to do? Oh, ye gods and little fishes!" he groaned
disconsolately.

"I'm afraid so," Mollie replied sympathetically. "I sprained my
ankle--" she was going to say "the other day" but remembered in
time--"once in the holidays, and I had to lie on a sofa all day. It
wasn't nearly so dull as I expected though," she ended with a little
laugh. As they talked she had been skilfully bandaging the swollen
ankle in her best style, which was a style not to be despised by
anybody. "Now," she said, as she tucked in the end and fastened it
firmly with her Tenderfoot brooch, "now you will be more comfortable.
But you must keep quite still. I do wish you were not so far from home;
you should not ride. If you do anything foolish now you may be lame all
your life; that's what the doctor told me; he was most frightfully firm
about it. Your wrist is bleeding--you have cut it."

The young man turned back his shirt sleeve. "It is nothing. A
handkerchief twisted round will do. You have done the bandage
beautifully."

Mollie arranged the handkerchief. As she did so her eyes fell upon a
tattoo-mark, an anchor inside a true-lover's knot. It was an ordinary
enough tattoo-mark, but the sight of it struck at Mollie for _she had
seen it before_. The odd impression of last night, which she had
forgotten in the various exigences of the situation, came rushing back
into her mind. Who _did_ he remind her of? How could she possibly have
seen that little mark before?

"My name is John Smith," he said, looking up and finding her eyes fixed
questioningly upon him. "I don't think we have met before?"

"I saw you last night at the Campbell's," Mollie replied aloud (while
to herself she added, "And where I saw you before that is what I should
like to know more than anything else at this present moment"). "I am
staying there. It was dark on the balcony and there were a lot of us
children; you wouldn't notice me. My name is Mollie--oh, you simply
must _not_ twist your leg about like that! Your ankle _may_ be broken;
you don't know."

He smiled; his eyes crinkled up and there was a something in the tilt
of his mouth. Why was that smile so familiar? Was it the Prince of
Wales? No, it was someone she knew much better than she knew the Prince
of Wales. (Which wasn't saying very much after all.)

"You are very cheery! So you were there, were you? I never heard such
heavenly singing in my life. Von Greusen says that Mrs. Campbell has
one of the most beautiful voices in South Australia, and I should say
that he has the other. But it isn't only their voices, it's the way
they sing, making you think of all the might-have-beens and
ought-to-have-beens and never-will-bes--" he stopped, and sighed in a
melancholy way, leaning his back against the tree behind him. "I think
you had better be starting, Miss Polly. Neither of us will be the worse
of getting home."

"Mollie, not Polly. I wish you had not to be left alone. I will be as
quick as I can. How shall I describe this place? I think I had better
come back with the men."

"No need for that. Tell them I'm by the creek on the way to the olive
plantation. They'll know. I have a sister called Polly. I was thinking
of her at that moment," he added, with another sigh. "I had a letter
from her yesterday and she wants me to go back. The point is, shall I
go or shall I not?"

"I don't know, but I think I had better hurry," Mollie said. It had
occurred to her that if _she_ "went back" with her usual abruptness,
before she delivered her message, Mr. John Smith might be left in an
awkward predicament.

He handed over the compass with careful directions. She nodded her
head, waved her hand at her distractingly perplexing new acquaintance,
and set off. Soon her entire attention was absorbed in finding her way,
for, although she had used a compass often enough when Guiding, an
Australian forest was something quite new, and to her it seemed as
trackless as the ocean, every part of it looked so precisely the same
as every other part. Eventually, however, she found herself safely back
on the cart-track, though nowhere within sight of the Fairy Dell. She
decided to go straight home to the Campbell's house and ask there for
help for Mr. John Smith. Mr. von Greusen would probably be out at this
hour, and she felt shy of the big bearded men working about the place.

Mamma was in, and heard her story with concern.

"Of course he must come here," she exclaimed, with true Australian
hospitality, unquestioning and ungrudging. "He must be properly nursed
and fed." Mollie thought that Mamma looked rather pleased than
otherwise at the prospect of nursing and feeding a good-looking young
man newly out from home. Bridget was called, and between them all a
room was got ready and made to look as homelike as possible. "Flowers
and books," said Mrs. Campbell, "always make a room look pleasant. I
wish I had some photographs. I wonder who his people are. We'll put up
a picture of St. Paul's Cathedral, and this little water-colour of a
Sussex village; they are not quite the same thing as his mother or
sweetheart, but they will be better than nothing." She sighed as she
looked at the water-colour. They were great people for sighing, Mollie
thought. It must be rather miserable to be homesick so very, very far
away from home!

When Prudence and Grizzel, accompanied by the boys, all not a little
anxious about Mollie, arrived at home for dinner they found not only
the missing Mollie but also Mr. John Smith on the balcony. Mollie ran
down the steps to meet them, and gave a highly coloured account of her
adventures. Past differences were forgiven and forgotten, and after
dinner they all assembled on the balcony again with the benevolent
intention of devoting themselves to the entertainment of the
interesting invalid.

But Mrs. Campbell did not approve of this plan. "We are too many," she
said in her decided way. "Prudence and Mollie may stay; the rest of you
must run away for the present. Grizzel can go for a walk with Bridget
and Baby; I want a few things from the Store, and they can be brought
up in the perambulator. The boys had better go up to Mr. von Greusen's
and see about getting Mr. Smith's belongings brought here."

"You might call at the Fairy Dell and get the Gordello," Prudence
suggested--for after all she and Grizzel had made the new drink in a
fit of remorse--"Mr. Smith will perhaps like to taste it."

The family melted away, and Mamma with the two girls settled down to
needlework. Mamma's kindly interest invited confidence under these
pleasant circumstances, and it was not long before the young man was
pouring his story into her sympathetic ears. Prudence listened
spellbound. It was not often that one had romance brought to one's very
door--by a hero with a sprained ankle too! Such a romantic affliction!
But Mollie was too much preoccupied by that haunting likeness to listen
properly to what the hero was saying, once she had ascertained the fact
that Mr. Smith belonged to the Campbell's Time, and that therefore she
could not possibly have met himself before; it must have been somebody
extraordinarily like him. And yet--the number of her friends was not so
very great that one could be totally forgotten. She tried not to think
about it, but it stuck in the back of her brain in an irritating sort
of way and refused to be forgotten.

His story was not at all an uncommon one: a love-affair, a selection of
angry parents, lack of money, eternal vows, and a young man in search
of a fortune. He had been told that fortunes lay about loose in
Australia.

"Not that I mind working," he said. "I like work all right, but it's so
slow, and we are getting older all the time. I rather fancied a
vineyard; our parents are great on their cellars and might come round
to a vineyard and wine. I spent some time in France before coming here,
but it was hopeless. They won't look at a foreigner in their wine
concerns. As a matter of fact I have some hopes of my own governor
relenting. I am his only son, and he is getting tired of keeping me at
arm's length. There's nothing really in the way; only he had another
wife in view for me, and Margaret's father had another husband. _He_ is
rather a cantankerous old party. Too much port wine is what is the
matter with them both, that's my opinion; they're turning gouty."

As Mr. John Smith talked he pulled his watch out of his pocket and
sprung it open. In the back lay a tiny photograph.

"That's Margaret," he said.

The others bent over the faintly tinted portrait of a young girl,
pretty and smiling, her wavy hair rippling on either side of a smooth
brow. Mollie glanced at it absent-mindedly; the back of her brain, she
felt, was moving to the front; in another moment it would be there.

Mr. Smith looked affectionately at the pretty face. "That is my little
girl," he repeated, "and I--I ought to tell you--you are so kind--my
name is not really John Smith. I dropped my real name because I wanted
to dodge my governor--teach him a lesson, you know, not to play fast
and loose with his only son--poor old governor! I have written to him
since I came to Silver Fields. My real name is--"

Suddenly Mollie began to laugh. It had come in a flash--the long chair,
the bandaged foot on a foot-rest, the watch with its back open, the
tattooed anchor and rope on a lean wrist, and above all a pair of dark
eyes (so like Dick's) crinkled up in a kindly smile: "You don't blow
hard enough, little Polly," someone was saying, "try again." The hair
above the dark eyes was white, but Mollie knew.

"It's so _funny_," she cried, as they all looked at her, Prudence
anxiously inquiring if she had "got it again". "I'm all right, Prue,
but it's so funny. _I_ know who you are," she laughed again, turning to
Mr. Smith. "Your name isn't John Smith at all. You are poor dear
Richard. Who was so active. With the gout. And you are--you are my--"

"Hush, Mollie!" said Prue.

       *       *       *       *       *

Mollie sat up. She was still laughing. Aunt Mary stood beside her in
hat and coat, her hands full of cardboard boxes from Buszard's. Grannie
sat at the tea-table, and opposite her was old Mrs. Pell, who had put
on her bonnet because it would soon be time for her to go. They all
looked at Mollie, who continued to laugh.

"It's nothing," she said. "It is only a fit of giggles. I have them
sometimes."

"Give the dear child her tea, Mary," said Grannie. "Her nerves are a
little highly strung; her grandfather used to laugh just like
that--poor dear Richard!"




CHAPTER VII

The Aeronauts or The Fateful Stone


"Aunt Mary, how old is Time?" asked Mollie.

She was resting on her sofa in the garden, after her first attempt at a
short walk. She had been wondering how her young grandpapa had got on
with his sprained ankle, and longed to ask questions about him, but
dared not venture even on the simplest. It was so easy to forget and
ask too much. The day was rather hot, and the couch had been drawn into
the shade of a great copper-beech. Mollie lay on her back, gazing up
through the silky red foliage at the blue sky. Somewhere a thrush was
singing, practising his flute-like phrases with conscientious care.

"I think he must be trying for a scholarship," said Mollie. "How old is
Time?" she repeated, bringing her gaze down from the tree-tops to Aunt
Mary's hands, busy as usual with needlework.

"How old is Time?" Aunt Mary echoed. "What do you mean exactly by Time?"

"I mean, how long is it since days began--morning and afternoon and
evening?"

"Untold millions of years," her aunt answered. "I don't suppose that
anyone could say exactly how many, and in any case when we speak of
Time we mean Time on our own earth; what an astronomer would say I
don't know."

"How do you know that it is millions of years old?" Mollie asked. "In
the Bible it says that the evening and the morning were the first day
in the year 4004 B.C. That is only five thousand, nine hundred and
twenty-four years ago."

"You are asking terribly big questions," Aunt Mary said, with a smile.
"It would take a long time to explain how men learnt to know the age of
the world, and I am afraid I am hardly equal to the task. It is only
about seventy years since geologists began to suspect that our earth
was far older than they had supposed, I have some simple books which I
think you could understand if you tried; and if you learn to take an
interest in geology you need never be dull again as long as you live.
You will find 'tongues in trees, books in the running brooks, sermons
in stones, and good in everything'."

"That would be very nice," Mollie said politely but not
enthusiastically; "but just now I only want to know how old Time is.
Millions and millions of years," she repeated to herself rather
dreamily. "If you took forty from millions and millions it wouldn't
make any difference worth mentioning. It makes even Adam seem almost as
near as last week. And this morning I said I hadn't time to darn a hole
in my stocking. I wonder if Eve said she had no time. Were there any
people before Adam, Aunt Mary?"

Aunt Mary shook her head. "Ask the wise thrush," she said; "his
ancestors are older than mine."

"Are they really!" Mollie exclaimed. "Did that thrush's
ever-so-great-grandfather sing in the Garden of Eden?"

Aunt Mary only answered with a smile, and Mollie listened again to the
thrush, her thoughts wandering back to the times of forty years ago.
Quite a little time, she mused. No wonder they were so little
different, considering all things, from our own. She had thought that
the children of those days must be frightfully dull, and terribly
strictly kept; but on the whole they were, in some ways, less dull--or
more exciting--and certainly had more liberty, than the children of
to-day. Perhaps, however, that was Australia, where there was so much
more room than there was in England. She wondered how Dick and Jerry
were getting on to-day, and wished for the hundredth time that she
could see them and talk things over. They had each other to talk to,
but she had no one.

"Have you any diamonds, Aunt Mary?" she asked presently. "I should like
to see some diamonds; and rubies and emeralds and topazes and opals and
pearls and amethysts and sapphires, and all the precious stones you've
got."

"Bless my soul, Mollie! Do you think I am the Queen of Sheba!" Aunt
Mary exclaimed. "Grannie has some old-fashioned jewellery locked away
in a drawer, but the family diamonds are nothing to go to law about.
The only diamond I possess," she went on, "is a green diamond in a ring
that someone gave me long, long ago. Long ago," she repeated with a
sigh, letting her work drop into her lap and gazing at something that
Mollie could not see, for it was the distant past.

Mollie gave a violent start. A green diamond! In a ring! Long, long
ago. How very extraordinary! She dared not ask any questions, but she
examined her aunt with new and critical interest, from the shining
coils of smooth brown hair to the slim ankles and neat buckled shoes.
No, she decided, that hair could never have been red and ringletty;
besides, Grizzel's eyes were blue and round like a kitten's, while Aunt
Mary's were dark brown and long-shaped. Very pretty eyes, Mollie
suddenly discovered. Also, Aunt Mary was too young. Forty years ago
Grizzel was eight or nine years old, which would make her nearly fifty
now. Mollie paused for a moment to picture to herself a fifty-year-old
Grizzel, but, failing utterly in the attempt, she continued her
meditations on her aunt. Aunt Mary was certainly a considerable
distance from that venerable age. Mollie wondered again why she had
never married, and who had given her that ring. She sighed impatiently.
She wished that she was not bound down by that promise; but she was,
hard and fast. It would be better not to think about the green diamond
just now. When she got back to forty years ago she would keep her eyes
open; it was not at all unlikely, considering all things, that Aunt
Mary had had an Australian lover, and it might be possible to do a kind
act somehow or other. What the effect would be if 1920 meddled about
with the affairs of 1880 Mollie had ceased worrying over. It was
altogether too puzzling.

Aunt Mary remained a little absent-minded all the morning, and when the
time came for Mollie to go to sleep that afternoon she could hear a new
tone in Aunt Mary's voice when she began to sing:

  "O bay of Dublin! my heart you're troublin',
  Your beauty haunts me like a fevered dream,
  Like frozen fountains that the sun sets bubblin
  My heart's blood warms when I but hear your name;
  And never till this life pulse ceases,
  My earliest thought you'll cease to be;
  Oh! there's no one here knows how fair that place is,
  And no one cares how dear it is to me!"

"If Aunt Mary goes on like this, Prue will certainly find me howling my
eyes out," Mollie said to herself. "Talk of might-have-beens and
never-will-bes! Grandpapa should hear his own daughter singing! Why did
I go and mention green diamonds to her!" She shut her eyes tight to
keep the tears from falling. The plaintive tune went on, and when a
small soft hand crept into her own her cheeks were wet. She kept her
eyes closed and held tight to the little hand!

       *       *       *       *       *

She was standing in a wide, brick-floored veranda with a steeply
sloping roof. The open sides were wreathed with morning-glories, their
deep-blue petals wide-spreading to the early sun. Painted tubs, full of
scarlet and purple fuchsias, stood in a row beside the railing;
coco-nut matting, rough and brown, lay in strips across the red brick
floor, and at either end of the veranda stood a deal table. One was
covered with books, toys, and work-baskets. At the other sat Bridget,
shelling peas. She was singing:

  "How often when at work I'm sittin',
  An' musin' sadly on the days of yore,
  I think I see my Katey knittin',
  An' the children playin' by the cabin door;
  I think I see the neighbours' faces
  All gathered round, their long-lost friend to see,
  Oh! though no one here knows how fair that place is,
  Heaven knows how dear my poor home was to me."

As she sang the last word she lifted the corner of her apron to dry her
eyes, and saw Mollie.

"Is it yourself, Miss Mollie, or is it your ghost? May the Lord look
sideways on me ould plaid shawl! You gave me a start then, for 'twas
only this minute I looked to see an' there was no one there at all."

"It's me," said Mollie, swallowing down a few last tears and wondering
if she was speaking the truth--perhaps it _was_ her ghost! "Where's
everybody?"

"They're all dressin' themselves for the balloonin', an' may the Lord
preserve Master Hugh an' keep his bones from breakin'. 'Tis a temptin'
o' Providence an' his mother sailin' on the salt seas, poor soul. The
way the death-watch has been tickin' on me this wake past is something
cruel."

"What's the ballooning?" Mollie began, but before Bridget could answer
Prudence appeared at the house door, dressed in festive pink muslin and
a white hat wreathed with rosebuds.

"Come along, Mollie," she said, "and don't listen to Bridget croaking.
If I died every time she hears my death-watch tick, or sees my shroud
in a candle, there would be a whole cemetery full of my graves by this
time. There's a yellow muslin frock for you."

They had reached the girls' bedroom, which Mollie recognized as the
first of the rooms she had slept in. They were back in the house with
Hugh's tree and the yellow-carpeted garden. She looked admiringly at
the pretty muslin frock on the bed. It was white, powdered over with
tiny dots of pale yellow, and made with filmy flounces reaching to the
waist; a frilled fichu, or "cross-over" as Prue called it, came over
the front of the little bodice, falling slightly below the waist and
tied behind with pale-yellow ribbons. A wide white hat was wreathed
with primroses and green leaves. It was indeed a charming frock, and so
modern that Mollie thought she might have worn it at home without
anyone being surprised at anything except her unusual smartness.
Prudence and Grizzel wore dresses fashioned in precisely the same way,
but Prue's muslin was sprigged with pink rosebuds, while Grizzel's dots
were green.

"Come along, my rainbow," said Papa. "If we are late we won't get a
good place."

They walked down the cypress-bordered path of Mollie's first visit, and
joined the stream of people going along the road, like themselves, to
see the balloon ascent. Mollie felt very gay and festive; everybody
feminine wore light frocks, the sun was bright but not too hot, the
grass was green, and the whole countryside was frothed with
almond-blossom, white and pink. Birds flew briskly about, indifferent
to balloons, and horses with shining chestnut coats trotted along the
well-kept road, lifting their slim ankles and polished heels in an
elegant way very different from the gait of London cab-horses.

A balloon ascent was always a thrilling sight, Prudence explained, but
the particular thrill about this one was that Hugh was going up. The
aeronaut was a friend of Papa's, and, Mamma being on her way home to
England, it had not been difficult to persuade easygoing Papa to give
his consent. Indeed, there was nothing that he would have liked better
than to go up himself, but Mr. Ferguson had shaken his head over
fifteen stone of useless passenger.

"If we could throw you out a pound at a time you would be most
welcome," he had said; "but you must wait a bit, Professor; the day
will come when we shall not have to count every pound."

When they reached the field they found a deeply interested crowd
already collected, and Papa had some difficulty in getting his rainbow
into a good position. The huge balloon towered up far above them, its
striped smoke-coloured sides gleaming under the netted mesh as it
swayed with every breath of wind. The wicker car looked very small and
frail.

"It's not so small as it looks," Prue said to Mollie. "We were in it
yesterday. It is nearly as big as my bedroom, and the sides reach up to
Hugh's shoulder; he couldn't fall out unless he did it on purpose.
There are dear little cubby-holes and all sorts of cute fixings. Its
name is the _Kangaroo_. I do wish I could go up too, but Papa and Mr.
Ferguson simply wouldn't hear of it. Girls are never allowed to do
anything."

"Aren't you nervous?" Mollie asked. "Suppose it suddenly burst when it
was ever so high. How high does it go?"

"Mr. Ferguson has been up five miles, but he is only going up one
to-day. They won't be very long away."

"You would be just as badly smashed if you fell one mile as if you fell
five, I should think," said Mollie, with a shudder.

"It isn't falling that they think about," Prue explained, "When you get
very high you can't breathe, and you have all sorts of horrid feelings.
Once Mr. Ferguson fainted, and if the man with him hadn't pulled the
stopper thing out with his teeth they'd both have been killed."

"Why teeth?" asked Mollie.

"Because his hands were frozen, and he couldn't use them," answered
Prue. "They'll be starting soon; they are going on board--look, there's
Hugh!"

Mollie saw a small grey-clad figure climbing into the car. He was
followed by two men, one tall and the other rather short. As they
climbed over the rails the great balloon swayed and trembled--it looked
far more dangerous than a nice substantial aeroplane, Mollie thought;
and there was no control, they simply flew up and were blown hither and
thither according to the will of the winds. Suppose they were blown
against something and got a great rip in the side!

"I don't know how you _can_," she said to Prue. "If it were Dick--where
are Dick and Jerry? Haven't they come?"

"Here we are, old bean, at your elbow. My word, wouldn't I like to be
going up too!"

"Same here. Some chaps have all the luck!" groaned Jerry.

Prudence shook her head. "Mr. Ferguson would never take more than one
boy. Two might begin larking, and you simply must not lark in a
balloon."

Dick thought of a joke about larks and balloons, but decided that it
was not a really first-class joke and merely shook an accusatory head
at boys and their reprehensible ways.

[Illustration: THEY STOOD AND WATCHED THE _KANGAROO_ FOR SOME TIME]

The ring of men who held down the balloon were preparing to let go the
ropes; the band began to play, the men in the balloon took off their
caps and waved farewell, people cheered--and the _Kangaroo_ was off.
She rose swiftly and buoyantly, remaining almost perpendicular until
she was caught by a southwest current of air and sailed away towards
the hills. As she rose the children could see Hugh at the edge of the
car, waving his handkerchief.

It was very exciting. They stood and watched the _Kangaroo_ for some
time, but her progress was slow, and Papa remarked that they could see
her just as well from the street as from the field, now that she was
near the clouds. He looked at his watch:

"There is just time to go and have some lunch before your dinner. What
would you say to cocoa and cream-cakes at Bauermann's?"

This suggestion cheered away the left-behindish feeling that they all
experienced as they watched that distant pear-shaped object floating in
the sky. As they walked along the road it was impossible to keep their
eyes and thoughts from following the balloon, so that conversation was
desultory, until Mollie thought she saw a bad wobble and gave a little
scream.

"You really need not be so nervous," Prue said, catching her by the
arm. "Mr. Ferguson has been up hundreds of times, he won't let Hugh
down. Bridget read Hugh's fortune in his tea-cup last night and says he
is going to die when he is eighty-three-and-a-half; I can't think why
she has begun to hear his death-watch tick already. And besides--don't
you believe in Fate? If it is your fate to fall from a balloon and be
killed, you'll be killed that way; there's no use trying not to be."

"You couldn't be if you never went up in a balloon," said Mollie.

"Then it wouldn't be your fate," Prudence answered.

Mollie could not think of a suitable reply at the moment and was silent.

"That's not all," Grizzel added. "Hugh has got my green diamond with
him for luck. Bridget says that my diamond is the Luck of the
Campbells, and will always bring good luck to the person that wears it,
like a four-leaved shamrock. So I made Hugh take it."

This remark reminded the others of the diamond-mine, and Dick, Jerry,
and Mollie became eager for news of that adventure. It had turned out
fairly well; they had not as yet made a fortune, but on the strength of
their prospects Mr. Fraser had encouraged Papa to send Mamma and Baby
for a trip home, and to add several comforts to the household, one of
which was the broad veranda at the back of the house, in which Mollie
had found herself that morning.

"We live in it by day, and some of us sleep in it by night," Prue said.
"You shall sleep in a hammock to-night, Mollie."

After a feast of cocoa and cream-cakes at Bauermann's they got home
just in time for a dinner of twice-laid and Uncle Tom's pudding, to
which even Dick and Jerry could not do justice.

"It's my favourite dinner, too," sighed Prudence. "It's a strange thing
that one day you get too much and another day too little. To-morrow
there will be no Bauermann's and most likely dinner will be boiled
mutton and tapioca pudding."

The afternoon passed rather slowly. Hugh might be back about five
o'clock, and they were too anxious to hear how he had got on to be able
to settle down to any occupation. They played croquet until all their
tempers were hopelessly lost, even Prudence accusing Mollie of
cheating. As if a Guide ever cheated under any circumstances
whatsoever! After each girl in turn had thrown down her mallet and
declared that she wouldn't play, Dick swiftly defeated Jerry, the party
recovered its tempers, and they were sitting down to play "I met a
One-horned Lady always Genteel" when the garden-gate clicked and Hugh
appeared.

Now Dick and Jerry, each in his own mind, had suspected that Hugh would
come back from his trip full of "swank", and each had decided that
gently and politely, but very firmly, he would squash the swanker. But
there was no sign of the conquering hero about Hugh. He came slowly up
the garden path towards them, gloom and depression showing in every
step that he took, and still more upon his face as he drew near.

They looked at him expectantly, but he stood silently beside them, his
shoulders stooping as though a load of care sat upon them, his usually
clear eyes heavy and clouded, and the corners of his mouth turned down
as if he had made up his mind never to smile again.

"What's up?" asked Jerry at last. "Did the balloon bust, and you the
sole survivor?"

"Didn't my diamond bring you luck after all?" Grizzel questioned
anxiously.

"Sick, old bean?" inquired Dick sympathetically.

"I think you'd better have tea right away," Prudence said, laying a
motherly little hand on her brother's arm.

"If he's got something bad to tell he'd better tell it," said Mollie.
"Nothing cures care like giving it air."

Hugh threw himself on the grass, hugged his legs with his arms, and,
resting his chin on his knees, stared before him in stony silence.

"Spit it out, old bus," Dick adjured him, "If you are in a scrape we
are with you to a man--aren't we?" he asked the others.

A chorus of agreement brought a flicker of light into the gloom of
Hugh's face.

"I have been the biggest ass in the world," he said. "If there is a
bigger it would comfort me to meet him."

Two brown hands were promptly outstretched, but Hugh shook his head:
"Wait till you hear." He paused for a moment, looked nervously from
side to side and then behind him:

"I'm a murderer. Probably I shall be hanged. Unless I poison myself
first."

"Hugh!" Prudence exclaimed sharply, "don't make these horrible jokes.
You know how Mamma hates them."

"It isn't a joke, worse luck," Hugh groaned; "it's beastly true. Thank
goodness Mamma is out of the way. Perhaps it can be hushed up so that
she will never know the truth about the way I died."

A look of consternation settled upon every face; whatever Hugh had
done, it was plain that he was exceedingly unhappy.

"Tell us," Jerry commanded briefly.

Hugh sat up. "I may as well," he agreed dejectedly. "You'd better hear
it from me than from some old policeman. I suppose one will be stalking
up the path soon." He was silent again for a minute, and then started
once more:

"It was this way. When we went up first it was perfectly glorious--you
never can imagine how lovely Adelaide looks from the air, with the
hills round and the sea in the distance and almond-blossom all over the
place. Oh--if only this thing hadn't happened I could tell you all
sorts of things, but now I can't think of anything. It was near the
end. I was awfully keen on trying an experiment--two experiments in
fact. I wanted to see how near I could hit a given spot if I aimed at
it with a stone, and I wanted to see how much the stone would deflect
in falling. Perhaps it's only one experiment really, but it struck me
as being two at the time. You see, if Australia ever goes to war we
might want to shoot from balloons, or one might drop a ball of
explosives with a fuse attached or something. I thought about it when
that Russian scare was on, but I never thought I'd get the chance to
try. So I got a good, smooth, round stone, nine-and-a-half ounces, and
wrapped it up in a handkerchief and took it up. I knew a good place to
aim at--the tree in Mr. Macgregor's Burnt Oak field. I knew the field
was empty; it is being ploughed up for some experiment that Mr.
Macgregor wants to try--blow all experiments! And to-day he gave his
men a holiday to come and see the balloon. We were about fifteen
hundred feet up and going slowly. I could see the oak and its shadow
quite plainly. So I let the stone drop."

Hugh paused again and groaned.

"Go on," said somebody.

"No one noticed what I had done, but something or other made Mr.
Ferguson start talking about how dangerous it was to chuck things over
carelessly, though it seems to me that in Jules Verne they spend half
their time chucking sandbags about. I asked him how about a stone
weighing half a pound, and he said it would fall half a mile in twelve
and a half seconds, and if it hit anyone on the head that person would
be as dead as if he had got a bullet through him. I felt a bit sick,
but I was glad that field had been empty. We came down soon after that,
and I cut off to Burnt Oak field to look for my stone." Hugh stopped
short.

"Go on," said the others.

"It wasn't there, nor anywhere round; and I _knew_ it must have dropped
on that field."

"But," said Jerry, "if it hit the earth at that speed it would bury
itself ever so deep. You could not possibly see it."

"I thought of that," said Hugh, "so I looked for the hole, and I found
it. About thirty feet from the tree, which was a good hit considering.
I could soon learn to aim well--that is, if I'm not hanged or sent to
prison for life. Oh--Well, I found the hole, and beside it I found--"

No one dared to ask a question. Hugh remained silent till it was almost
more than they could bear.

"Blood!" he whispered at last.

"Jiminy! Is that all!" exclaimed Dick. "I thought you were going to say
a dead body. If the body got up and walked away it couldn't have been
so very dead. How much blood? Were there any footmarks about?"

"That part of the field hadn't been ploughed, and the ground was rather
hard, covered with grass the cattle had been cropping. There were some
stones in a little pile, but my stone wasn't among them. I looked at
those stones--by George, I looked at them! They were splashed with
blood--Then I got sick, and then had to skedaddle because someone was
calling me."

"I am _sure_ it will turn out all right; you had the lucky diamond,"
Grizzel said consolingly.

"That makes it worse," said Hugh, groaning again. "I tied the diamond
up with the stone and forgot to take it out."

"Oh, _Hugh_!" exclaimed Prudence, more perturbed by this disaster than
by the hypothetical murder, "how _could_ you be so careless?"

"It doesn't matter," Grizzel persisted, with cheerful calm, "that
diamond brings luck. It has had one miracle, and I expect it will have
another. It will come back. Very likely the dead man will bring it back
himself."

"It will come back all right," said Hugh, "because the ring has
Grizzel's name inside it, and, seeing that mine is the same on the
handkerchief, the police will have a jolly good clue to start on. If
the person was _not_ hit and steals the diamond he'll take good care
not to show himself. Then the diamond will be gone, but I'll give
Grizzel mine. I'll spend my bank money on getting a ring made. Oh--if I
only knew! If I only knew what was going to happen I shouldn't mind so
much. It's waiting for that bobby to turn up that gives me the
horrors." He looked over his shoulder as he spoke, with a shiver of
anticipation.

"It sounds to me a bit fishy, you know," said Jerry, with a thoughtful
frown. "How do you know that the hole you saw was made by your stone?
It might have been there already."

"Because it was fresh, and the earth round was freshly thrown up; and
some of my handkerchief was lying beside it."

The boys looked grave. This did sound rather serious.

"But," said Mollie, "the stone could not have buried itself in a hole
and hit a person so that the person was killed at the same time. If it
went down into a hole it did not hit anyone."

"I never thought of that," said Hugh, cheering up for the first time.
"Neither it could; but there was the blood," he added despondently,
"pints of it. I never thought anything could bleed so much. Well--I
shall know before very long one way or the other, for either some news
will turn up or the diamond will stay away."

"The best thing you can do now is to have some tea," said Prudence,
"then you will feel better and we can plan what to do."

Things certainly looked less black after tea. Hugh, beginning to hope
for Grizzel's miracle, decided to develop some photographs of the
ballooners which he had taken on the previous day. "I promised Mr.
Ferguson to have some prints ready for him to-morrow," he said, "so I
may as well begin. If the bobby comes you can call me."

But everyone wanted to watch the developing process. Hugh's dark-room
was a roomy lean-to shed, built by himself and well equipped with
shelves, sink, and taps. It would hold six people at a pinch.

"No, I can't have you all," Hugh said, "you wouldn't all see at once,
and it is too much of a crowd. I'll take two at a time. Dick and Prue
to begin with."

The remaining three settled themselves within sight of the garden gate,
and discussed the various features of Hugh's adventure.

"I don't believe it is half so bad as he thinks," Jerry said, "because
it stands to reason that a dead man could not get up and walk away,
especially not across a ploughed field. I doubt if even a man who had
lost several pints of blood could walk very far. And if he had been
_carried_ off, there would have been a fuss, and the ballooners would
have been tackled at once--in fact, I can't think why they weren't. I
think it looks rather bad for Grizzel's diamond; worse for the diamond
than for the man. I wonder how fast the balloon was going. How fast
does a balloon fly?"

"Somewhere from eight to thirty-six miles an hour, according to the
wind, Jules Verne says," Grizzel answered.

"Eight miles an hour! My hat! Fancy crawling through the air at eight--"

There was a sound at the garden gate and the three jumped to their
feet. A young man walked up the broad path between the cypress trees,
striking across the grass when he saw the children. He was not a
policeman, having indeed a very kind and cheerful expression, which he
was trying, not very successfully, to hide under a severe frown.

"Does anyone named Grizzel Campbell live in this house?" he asked.

"Yes, me," Grizzel answered, turning a little pale.

"You!" exclaimed the young man, looking with some astonishment at the
small figure before him, with its tumbled red curls. "I don't suppose
_you_ are the owner of a--" he broke off uncertainly.

"She is the owner of a green diamond in a ring, if that is what you
wish to know," Jerry spoke up.

"What on earth is a kid like you doing with a magnificent diamond
ring?" the young man asked, forgetting to frown and letting everyone
see quite plainly what a nice face he really had.

"Oh--have you got my ring? Has there been a miracle?" Grizzel cried,
clutching at the young man's arm.

"I have got the ring, and there has been a miracle sure enough," he
answered rather grimly. "I suppose that Mr. Hugh Campbell is your
brother. Where is he?"

"He's here all right," Jerry answered, "but would you mind telling us
what happened before I call him? Whatever he did he's jolly cut up
about it, and if it was anything very bad I'd like to--to prepare him a
bit, you know. He went to look for his stone and got the fright of his
life when he found his hank and the blood."

"Blood!" the young man ejaculated, with a puzzled frown. "What blood?"

"He said the ground was soaked in blood. All the stones were red. He
thinks that the person he hit must have lost pints of blood."

The young man threw back his head and laughed--a big, reassuring laugh
which brought some colour into the three pale and anxious faces turned
up to his. "Blood! I see! No, it was not so bad as all that, it only
_might_ have been. It was not blood, it was only--but I'd better begin
at the beginning and tell you what happened. I was sitting in
Macgregor's Burnt Oak field, working at--well, a little experiment I am
interested in, when I saw the balloon had come right over. Of course I
had been watching it, but for a bit I was absorbed in my experiment and
had not looked up. I looked up then and was staring hard, when
suddenly, before I could say Jack Robinson, a whacking stone came
hurtling down and cleared my head by less than a foot. If it had hit
me--by Jove! I'd have tried the last and biggest experiment before
this!"

"A foot is a pretty good miss," said Jerry, a look of immense relief
spreading over his face. "I know a chap who had a parting cut in his
hair with a bullet; that's what _I_ call a narrow shave. That's what he
calls it too," Jerry added, with a grin.

"No doubt he does. My shave was narrow enough for me, thank you. It all
but knocked my precious experiment into the middle of next week. But
what I want to know is why Hugh Campbell throws diamond rings about the
country. If the stone hadn't plopped into the middle of my--my little
game--which was almost another miracle when you consider the size of
the field--the ring would have been lost for ever."

"It's a miraculous ring," Grizzel explained, "and it brings luck. I
expect you'll be ever so lucky now. But how did you know where to look
for Hugh?" she added rather anxiously. Mr. Ferguson would not be
pleased, to put it mildly, if he knew how nearly Hugh had involved him
in a tragedy.

"I know your father," the young man replied, "he once did me a good
turn. So I knew where to look for the owner of the handkerchief without
troubling Mr. Ferguson."

"But what was that mush if it wasn't blood?" asked Jerry.

"That? Oh--that was merely my little experiment; that is my secret for
the present, and I trust you not to mention it. But no one has told me
why your brother chucked a diamond ring out of the balloon."

"It was a mistake; he was trying experiments too," Grizzel explained.
"But, please, may I go and tell him that he isn't a murderer? He is
expecting to be hanged every minute, and it makes him feel perfectly
miserable. But I was sure that my ring would bring him luck."

Grizzel sped off on her mission. She knocked at the dark-room door.
"Please put an ear at the keyhole--I have important news."

An ear was promptly at her disposal. She did not ask whose, but went on:

"The murdered man has come, and he isn't in the least dead. And his
blood wasn't blood, only his experiment, and he's got my ring. He is a
nice man, and he is forgiving Hugh as hard as he can, and there were
two miracles, and I told you so!"

There was a momentary silence within, and then a glad shout. Dick began
to sing "God save the King", which seemed less appropriate when he
remembered that the sovereign of the moment was a queen; but no one
noticed, and the main point was that someone was saved. A few minutes
later the dark-room party emerged, Hugh very pale and shaky as he went
to meet his supposed victim. Indeed, for a moment he was incapable of
speech, and Jerry, who knew only too well what it felt like to have a
lump sticking in his throat just when he wanted to be most manly and
soldier-like, filled up what would have been an awkward pause by saying
anything that came into his head until Hugh had recovered himself.

"I've had a lesson," he began, as he shook hands with the young man,
whose name they now learnt was Desmond O'Rourke. "I am awfully sorry--"

"That's all right," Mr. O'Rourke interrupted, "we all have to learn
lessons now and then--I've learnt some myself--at least I hope I have.
How are the photographs turning out?"

"Very well, thank you. Would you like to come and see them? Mr.
Ferguson's is the best portrait I have done yet." Hugh recovered from
his emotion as he spoke, but he was still very pale.

Mr. O'Rourke accepted the invitation with alacrity. "We can exchange
experiences," he said. "I am curious to know what the experiment was
that so nearly bowled me out. But first I must return the diamond to
its owner." He drew the ring out of an inner pocket and held it out to
Grizzel. As the diamond met the golden glow of the fading day its green
rays gleamed and sparkled. "One might believe it was alive!" Mr.
O'Rourke exclaimed. "I never saw anything like it. You kids ought not
to have a jewel like that to play pitch-and-toss with; someone should
keep it for you."

"I wear it round my neck," said Grizzel, unfastening the neckband of
her overall and showing a slender chain of finely wrought gold. She
took it off and slung the ring on.

"I have one almost as good," Hugh observed, as they watched Grizzel,
"but mine is not set yet; perhaps I'll have it made into a ring some
day. Mamma says I should keep it till I want an engagement ring--"

  "O bay o' Dublin, my heart you're troublin',"

Mollie gave a violent start--but it was only Bridget singing in the
kitchen.

Mr. O'Rourke turned his head and listened. "Who comes from Dublin?" he
asked.

"It's Bridget, our nurse when Baby is here and our cook just now,"
Prudence answered. "She's feeling homesick. She does sometimes."

"So do I," said Mr. O'Rourke. "It's a long time since I've seen the bay
o' Dublin. I must shake hands with Bridget."

Mollie gazed earnestly at Mr. O'Rourke. Was _he_ Aunt Mary's long-ago
lover? No--he was too old. He must be twenty-two at least. But she felt
almost sure that _somehow_ he had something to do with that romance.

As they stood at the white gate later on, saying good-bye, their new
friend pulled a round white stone out of one of his many pockets.
"Shall I keep this or shall I give it to you?" he asked Hugh.

There was a curious silence as the children gathered round to gaze at
the innocent-looking missile in Mr. O'Rourke's hand. It was little the
worse of its adventure--slightly chipped and scratched, and on one side
an ominous red stain which made Hugh shiver and turn pale again, as it
reminded him how nearly his thoughtlessness had cost a life.

"Give it to me," he said at last. "I will write the date on it, and if
it doesn't remind me to think twice, nothing will, and I will _deserve_
to be hanged."

"Very well," agreed Mr. O'Rourke, "only remember that the red stain is
only what I told you it was."

"I'll remember," said Hugh, holding the stone in his hand and looking
gravely down at it, "but I won't forget that it _might_ have been what
I thought it was."

Grizzel's solemn round eyes went from one to the other during this
transaction. "Is that what it means in books when it says, 'marked with
a white stone'?" she asked Hugh.

"It _is_ a sort of milestone," Hugh answered thoughtfully, "and it will
mark a new start for me. It ought to have your name on as well as
mine," he added, looking up at Mr. O'Rourke. "Perhaps it means a new
mile for you too. You can't tell."

The young man laughed: "You make me feel as if it were my tombstone;
you are all so solemn. Let me see a smile before I go."

A nice white smile flashed round the company, but Hugh's eyes remained
thoughtful as he watched the young Irishman walk away down the leafy
road.

After all the emotions of that exciting day Hugh was tired, so next
morning found the children sitting quietly in the broad veranda.
Prudence busied herself with sewing; Grizzel sat at the table happily
absorbed in painting a spray of wattle to send to Mamma. She had placed
it in a tall, slender vase of Venetian glass, pale yellow flecked with
gold. Hugh lay on the floor, his chin in the hollow of his hands, and
his feet alternately tapping the red bricks and waving in the air, as
he contemplated a small steam-engine which he had been putting through
its paces. Mollie, Dick, and Jerry sat on the veranda steps, the boys
printing photographs, while Mollie idly played with the trailing
garlands of morning-glory and traveller's joy which hung around her.
Between the blossoming almond trees she could see golden splashes of
wattle in the field beyond. At her feet a mass of big Russian violets
boldly lifted their heads above their leaves, and an acacia, which
overshadowed the veranda, was dropping milky petals on the path. Mollie
knew all the sweet scents by name now. It was queer, she thought, how
the seasons came slipping round, each bringing its own fruit and
flowers--here in Australia in Prue's Time, and there in Chauncery in
her own Time. She turned her head and stared at the shabby old
grandfather clock which stood in a corner of the veranda. For forty
years, she thought, its pendulum would slowly swing, till it said "How
d'ye do" to the ticking clock in Grannie's morning-room. Forty years
was a long time to look forward to.

"Jolly nice smells here," Dick remarked. "How ripping the almond
blossom looks in the sunshine. We've got an almond tree in our
backyard, and once there was an almond on it."

"There are thousands of almonds here," Prue said, pausing in her work
for a moment and gazing dreamily at the delicate outline of almond
branches against the sky. "They are nicest when they are green, but I
must say they do give you dreadful pains. I wonder why so many nice
things leave a pain. Music does too--and even one's best friends
sometimes."

"Do you eat your best friends boiled up with green almonds to the tune
of 'Good-bye for ever--good-bye, good-bye'?" Dick inquired.

They laughed. "There's an old gentleman come to live next door,"
Prudence continued, taking up her sewing again, "who watches us through
a telescope sometimes, and when he sees us in the green-almond trees he
writes to Papa. He says it is for our good, old telltale. Once, though,
he took us into his library and showed us some beautiful fossils. He
said they were as old as Moses, and one of them might be a million
years old. It was a fan-shell, quite whole and pretty. Fancy a million
years! I wonder what the world will be like in another million years."

"Bust," said Dick briefly.

They laughed again and then were silent. Mollie looked round at the
little group and thought how easy it was to be good when one had nice
things to do and plenty of time and room to do them in. "Where is Miss
Hilton?" she asked, "and where is Laddie? And why aren't you at school
this time? How do you ever learn enough to pass your exams?"

"Miss Hilton is housekeeper while Mamma is away," Prudence answered,
"and she hasn't much time for lessons. Laddie is dead. He was poisoned.
We couldn't bear to have another dog. Papa doesn't like exams. He likes
us to be out all the time and not to stoop over books. He says we can
'find tongues in trees, books in the running brooks, sermons in stones,
and good in everything'."

Mollie gave a little jump. The very words Aunt Mary had quoted that
morning! There was certainly _something_ queer somewhere!

"What a jolly kind of father to have," Dick exclaimed. "I wish my good
parent held these views. His are quite otherwise. He believes in any
amount of stooping over books, though I am always pointing out to him
that it isn't the chaps who swot over books that turn into Generals and
things in the end."

"When Mamma comes home Grizzel and I are going to school." Prudence
said regretfully. "I know we shall hate it, but I suppose we must learn
grammar and geography some time." She sighed at the distressing
prospect before her.

Mollie smiled as she wondered what school would make of Grizzel. She
looked at Hugh, absorbed in some great new idea. What would he be like
in forty years. In Chauncery Time he must now be fifty-four. Were there
then _two_ Hughs? And if two, why not twenty? Or hundreds, for that
matter, like the films of a cinematograph. Perhaps everyone had a sort
of film-picture running off all the time, and some day, before those
million years had passed, a way would be found to develop them. It
would not be much more wonderful than wireless and flying and all those
things that looked impossible to people in this Time. Mollie began to
think of London, and of home in North Kensington, and then felt a
sudden longing for her mother and Jean and the little ones--for all the
familiar ways of home and school. This place was lovely, and the
children were perfect dears, but it would be nice to feel a
hockey-stick in her hand again--and she _should_ like to see her own
comfortable mother. In fact, she felt homesick!

"A balloon is all very well," Hugh said, "so far as it goes." He rolled
round on to his back, clasping his hands under his head and staring up
at the white clouds over which he had flown yesterday. "But it doesn't
go far _enough_. It will never be much use until we learn to steer. You
have to go whichever way the wind chooses, which may be exactly the way
you don't want to go. I can't see myself how one could ever steer
without machinery, and to carry that weight you'd have to have a
balloon the size of a mountain."

"There's wings," said Prudence, "like Hiram Brown."

"What's the good of wings that let you drop the moment you try to fly
with them. Hiram Brown is as dead as a door nail with his wings. No,
wings fastened on _that_ way will never work. Our internal machinery
isn't made like birds'." As he spoke a parrot flew overhead, its
brilliant wings flashing in the sunlight and then becoming apparently
motionless as it swooped down towards the house. Hugh's eyes followed
it intently, and presently he rolled over again and resumed his study
of the steam-engine.

"Wings," he murmured, "after all wings are the right things to fly
with. Why not make the whole thing, body and all." He frowned hard as
he concentrated his whole attention upon the toy before him.
"Wings--and steam--a boiler--"

The boys and Mollie watched him curiously. This was the Thought that
came before the Thing, Mollie thought, remembering her conversation
with Aunt Mary. It was rather like a game of hide-and-seek. Hugh was
getting warm--how near would he get? They tried to catch the disjointed
words that fell from his lips at intervals. "Wings," he muttered again,
"and a place for the flier--why not a car--a--a--a box like an
engine-driver's, with handles for controlling--"

In the minds of the English children, now listening breathlessly, there
arose a vividly distinct image of an aeroplane, darkly silhouetted
against a pale English sky. How many they had seen!

Hugh's mutterings ceased. It seemed to Mollie that the world had grown
very still. She fancied that she could almost hear the blossoms
dropping on the grass; there was a faint stir of leaves as a stray
breeze came wandering by, and another sound mingled with that stir--a
far-away hum--hum--growing louder every moment!

The English children looked at each other. Was this one of Grizzel's
miracles? Their eyes turned to the sky--yes, there it came! It winged
its way like a mighty bird, singing its strange rough song. Prue
dropped her work and stood up, Grizzel let fall her pencil and clung to
Prue, Hugh leapt to his feet and ran down the steps, his face upturned
to the clouds.

"Oh, what is it?" he cried. "What is it? Who are you?"

The aeroplane swooped down as the bird had done, till it was straight
overhead, then, with a lovely curve, it skimmed away, the great wings
outstretched as the bird's had been, away into the distant blue!

Hugh held out his arms. "Don't go--oh, don't go!" he cried. "Come back,
come back!"

But it had gone.

The English children looked at each other again, and from each other to
Hugh.

"_We_ brought it," whispered Jerry, "it was a Time-traveller."

Mollie turned to the Australians. The sunlight fell on Hugh's pale
face, on Grizzel's ruddy curls; there was a faint smile on Prue's lips.

"Oh, we have brought our Time too near," she exclaimed. "It is
good-bye! No, no, Prue! Oh--_this_ time it is good-bye!"

       *       *       *       *       *

"No, no--I don't want to wake up yet! It is too soon! I haven't said
good-bye. Not yet, Aunt Mary!"

"It's not 'good-bye', my Mollie, it's 'how d'ye do?' you've got to say!
You have been dreaming too hard, child."

Mollie sat up and rubbed her eyes in bewilderment, for it was not Aunt
Mary at all, but Mother, standing there and smiling.

"No, it's not my ghost," she laughed, when Mollie had released her
stranglehold. "I came down partly to see how my daughterling was
getting along, and partly to ask Grannie and Aunt Mary if they would
like two more troublesome, non-paying guests. Would it bore you
unutterably to have to entertain your twin and Jerry Outram for a
fortnight?"

"Oh, Mother! Not really! How perfectly lovely! Why?"

"Measles at school; so they are closing a month early, and it would be
_such_ a boon to Mrs. Outram and me if the boys could be quarantined
away from home. Aunt Mary says she would _like_ to have them, strange
woman, and Grannie is already planning a course of Manners--the
beautiful capital-M Manners of her young days."

Mollie laughed as she gave her mother a comfortable unmannerly hug.
"You are all frauds," she said. "Don't talk to me of your young days. I
guess they weren't one pin better than ours. I hope Dick and Jerry are
coming soon."

"To-morrow. Now, I'll have some tea, and then a little talk, and then I
must be off again. I stole Father's car, as he has gone down to
Bournemouth. So there's no time to waste. What beautiful strawberries!"

"They are ready just in time for the boys," said Grannie benignly.




CHAPTER VIII

How it Ended


Dick and Jerry arrived on the following morning in rampageous spirits.
To get away from hot and dusty London to the cool, green country, from
the discipline and restrictions of school to the benevolent and
generous rule of Grannie's household, from plain bread-and-butter,
stews, and solid puddings, to Martha's delicious scones and unlimited
strawberries and cream--was enough to make any thirteen-year-old
schoolboy radiantly cheerful. There was plenty to do at Chauncery, too;
a first-class tennis-court and an aunt who played for her county;
excellent golf and the same aunt nearly as good at golf as she was at
tennis; a pony to be ridden or driven, several dogs and a new litter of
puppies, and last but not least, Mollie, and the mystery of the
Time-travellers to be talked over.

"Here we are, Grannie," Dick exclaimed superfluously, running up the
front steps to where Grannie stood with a smile of welcome on her
beaming face. "And jolly glad to be here, you bet your best Sunday
bonnet. London is like a baker's oven. You look very fit, Grannie, and
Jerry says Aunt Mary is too young to be my aunt; I believe he is spoons
on her already--what ho! my Uncle Jerry! Come and be introduced." Dick
gave Jerry's arm a tug, and Young Outram shook hands with a smile that
won Grannie's heart at once.

Mollie had limped out of the morning-room with the help of a stout
crook-handled stick. Dick gave her a brotherly peck, and Jerry looked
at her commiseratingly. It was rather difficult to reconcile this pale,
limping Mollie with the active young Time-traveller of yesterday.

"You're looking a bit like a mashed potato," Dick remarked critically.
"You've been shut up in the house too much. It's time we came and
hauled you out. I'll tell you what, Aunt Polly-wolly-doodle, we'll take
her out for a drive in the trap this afternoon."

"We'll see," said Aunt Mary. "I am afraid you are too fresh, Dick. You
might tumble her out in the exuberance of your spirits. Besides, it is
going to rain--it is drizzling already."

"Pouf!" said Dick lightly. "What's a little rain! A little soft, wet
rain will do her good. And Long John seems to have been eating his fat
head off; he played no end of jinks coming along just now. I'll take
him round to the stables--I want to see the puppies. Hop in, Moll.
We'll bring you back in a queen's chair."

But Grannie insisted upon some light refreshment first. She was sure
the boys must be exhausted after their two hours' journey from town.
"And the best way to fight measles is to feed you up," she said,
leading the way to the dining-room, where strawberries, cherries,
biscuits, and a jug of creamy milk stood invitingly upon the table.

The boys consented to the feeding-up process without a murmur. When the
plates were all empty they departed on a round of visits to the stable,
tennis-court, tool-shed, and other haunts dear to the heart of boy.
Aunt Mary firmly refused to allow Mollie to accompany them, even in the
queen's chair they offered.

"You are tired already," she said to her niece, "and if you want to go
for that drive this afternoon you must certainly rest first. Back to
your sofa, Miss Mollie--away with you!"

So Mollie rested, with a book in her lap and her thoughts by turns far
away and near home.

Later on she was carefully helped into the little governess-cart, with
a list of messages to be done in the village, and another list of
extravagant promises from the boys of the amazing benefits she was to
derive from her outing with them. Long John had got over his first fine
raptures, and was now willing to jog along the sweet country lanes at a
steady and sober pace, suitable for the invalid he carried behind him.

"How jolly nice it does look after London," Jerry remarked, as a long
branch of honeysuckle swept his cap on to the floor of the trap, where
he let it lie unconcernedly. "After all--there's no place like old
England. For looks, anyhow."

  "Each to his choice, and I rejoice
   The lot has fallen to me
  In a fair ground--in a fair ground--
   Yea, Sussex by the sea,"

Mollie quoted, as they came to a standstill at the top of a long
incline. In the distance they saw the sea gleaming somewhat greyly
under a brief spell of sunshine. All around them the trees and hedges
sparkled with raindrops, green and cool and wet.

"They look like green diamonds," said Dick, letting his cap drop beside
Jerry's and allowing the reins to fall loosely on Long John's back, as
the pony edged to the side of the road and began to nibble the grass.
"Rather different from the gold-diggings, isn't it?"

This remark set the ball rolling. "What do you think it was?" Mollie
began.

"Blessed if I know," Dick answered, with a shake of his head, "blue
magic of some sort. Unless we all dreamt it."

"No, it wasn't a dream," said Jerry thoughtfully. "It was simply
psychical phenomena. I've heard of things just as queer. Awfully funny
things happen in India. And look at the 'phantom armies' in France."

"Rot," said Dick briefly. "_I_ think it was a kink in Mollie's brain,
and she passed it on to me. We do, sometimes. Mother says all twins do.
And your silly head was as empty as usual and you psychicked it from
me."

"Rot," said Jerry, with as much decision as Dick. "I saw the blooming
parrot as soon as you did, if not sooner."

"It wasn't rot," Mollie said decidedly; "whatever it was it wasn't rot.
_I_ think--" she paused for a moment to consider her words--"I believe
it may have been just what Prue said it was. We travelled back in Time.
It sounds impossible, but if you come to think of it lots of things
that happen now would have sounded impossible to those children, or at
any rate to Papa and Mamma. If Alice in Wonderland could have seen
forty years ahead she would have found it quite easy to believe six
impossible things before breakfast. There's submarines for one, and
flying, and wireless, especially telephones, and the cinema. If we
could have taken the Campbells to a moving picture of a submarine
submerging, with aeroplanes flying round, and a lecture wirelessed from
America coming out of a gramophone, and the music done with a
piano-player, Time-travelling would not have seemed much more wonderful
to them."

Dick shook his head again. "It's different," he said. "All those things
might have seemed very wonderful and _almost_ impossible, but they
weren't _quite_ impossible. Time-travelling is."

"But we've done it," said Mollie.

Nobody answered. There did not appear to be an answer to that statement.

"Have you ever heard," Mollie said at last, speaking slowly and looking
at the boys with solemn eyes, "of a thing called Einstein's Theory of
Relatittey--I mean Rela_tiv_ity--Rel-a-_tiv_-ity?"

"Old Bibs jawed us about it one day," Dick answered, "but he said no
one could understand it except the chap himself and not always him. So
he didn't expect us to, which was a good job for everybody."

"That's what Aunt Mary said; I heard her talking. That's why I read
about it, because I'm fairly good at maths. She has it all pasted in a
book. I had to skip most of it, but here and there I found bits. I took
some notes," Mollie drew a penny notebook from her pocket. "One man
says that, if the world travelled as fast as light, there would be no
Time. All the clocks would stop, and we'd be There as soon as we were
Here. Well now, that's just what we did. We were Here--and we were
There. So our time stopped and Now was Then. See?"

"He says _If_. You couldn't live without Time. You _must_ have Time to
do things in or where would you be? You'd have to swallow all the meals
of your life at one mouthful and you'd bust. What comes next?"

"Another man says," Mollie read impressively, "that any
schoolboy--_any_ schoolboy," she repeated, fixing a stern eye upon her
brother, "can see that, if the velocity of light has a given value with
reference to the fixed stars, it cannot have the same value with
reference to its source when this is moved relatively to the stars."

"Gee-whiz!" said Dick. "Next, please."

"A man says that perhaps things measured north and south are different
from things measured east and west. _We_ travelled north and south.
Perhaps we stretched back in Time all of a sudden, like elastic."

"Couldn't be done. Elastic stretches both ways. If _you_ tried to move
north and south both at the same time you'd go off like a Christmas
cracker. Next."

"A man says that our ideas of space and time may be all wrong."

"Aunt Polly will agree with him if we stand here much longer," said
Dick. "Next. Hurry up."

"You don't stop to _think_," Mollie said impatiently. "Try and _think_.
Your head might just as well be a football. What _I_ think is that if
two un-understandable things are discovered about the same time they
must belong to each other. Don't you see _that_?"

"They might," Dick said cautiously, "and then again they mightn't. I
don't think myself that there's any use trying to understand things
like Time-travelling and Relativity. People like us never will."

"I don't know that," said Jerry, who had been listening to the
discussion in silence.

"There's lots of things just as hard to understand, only you take them
for granted. Being alive, for instance. Look at Mollie fidgeting about,
and Long John chewing and twitching, and the trees waving their
branches, and you shaking your head as if it were a dinner-bell, which
is about what it is--it's all life. Just as hard to understand as
Relativity, and a jolly sight harder if you ask me. I can't say I
understand Time-travelling, but--" Jerry broke off.

Mollie frowned thoughtfully. "We don't understand it _yet_," she said,
"but in _another_ forty years--"

They were all silent. Another forty years!

"We'll be fifty-three," Dick said at last. "A jolly funny looking lot
we'll be. All sitting round staring at each other through specs, with
white hair and no teeth worth mentioning. I'll have an ear-trumpet, and
Mollie will wear a cap like Grannie's, and Jerry will be a blithering
old idiot saying, 'Hey!' like General Dyson-Polks."

They had to laugh at this picture of themselves, and then Mollie began
at the beginning and told the story of Prue's first visit. The boys
were deeply interested. Their own experiences had merely been a
repetition of the first--Hugh had appeared and, like the gentleman who
dealt in Relativity, they were Here and they were There. "It has taught
us something about Australia anyhow," said Dick; "that is, of course,
if we saw the real thing. The next thing is to find out whether we did
or if the whole show was just bunkum."

"What I should like to know," said Jerry reflectively, "is who the
Campbells were, and how they got mixed up with your lot. They must have
at some time, or your people wouldn't have those photographs."

Mollie smiled. She knew how they and the Campbells had got "mixed up",
but she had never told the boys of her discovery; it was a little
secret between her and a certain photograph that smiled down at her
from the morning-room mantelpiece. She liked to think how the original
would have laughed along with her.

"What I should like to know," said Dick, "is what that chap O'Rourke
was doing in that field. What was his mysterious experiment, and how
did Hugh's stone cut into it? That's what I want to know, and I don't
suppose I ever will, now. I don't think we'll go back, not at present
anyway. The show's over for this time. In fact I don't want to go; I'm
too jolly well pleased to be where I am. Gee-up, you lazy brute,"--this
to Long John, who apparently thought he had done enough work for one
day and was nosing about the soft grass with contemptuous disregard for
his passengers. He moved on unwillingly, and Dick took him briskly
downhill.

In the village there were old friends to be greeted, and many inquiries
for Mollie's ankle to be answered. Fresh crusty loaves were brought out
by the baker, loosely wrapped in soft paper, and packed away under the
seats. A large box, containing a peculiarly delicious make of sponge
cake, was set on Mollie's lap, and a blue paper bag of sifted sugar was
entrusted to Jerry's special care by a misguided grocer. Dick had a
golf-club needing attention, which entailed a long and intimate
conversation with the local carpenter, who was also a well-known local
golfer, and the best hand at repairing clubs, Dick was convinced, in
the whole of Great Britain.

It was getting on towards tea-time when Long John's head was at last
turned homewards, and his feet covered the ground with cheerful and
approving swiftness. A drizzle of rain fell, "Just enough to save us
the trouble of washing for tea," Dick commented. "Do you think our
white aunt can be induced to come and play golf after tea, Moll, or is
she afraid of rain?"

"Good gracious, no," Mollie replied. "Aunt Mary goes out in all the
weathers ever invented. She will love a round of golf; she hasn't
played since I sprained my ankle. I wish I could come too. I wonder if
I could hop round with my stick and look on. I do love to watch Aunt
Mary drive; I learnt a lot from her last week before I sprained my
ankle in that idiotic way."

The boys negatived this proposal. "You'd get a ball in the eye to
finish you up with," Dick said. "We'll plan some picnics till you are
better, and explore the country a bit and knock some fat off this
animal--hullo!--what's that?"

A sudden twist in the narrow road had brought into view a motor
bicycle, leaning dejectedly against the hedge, whilst its owner
squatted beside it and tinkered at its mechanism--tinkered in vain
apparently, for, as the boys drew up beside him to offer assistance, he
rose to his feet and shook his head hopelessly.

"Can we help you?" Dick asked, eyeing the bicycle with interest. "I'm
afraid we've got no tools here, but there is a smithy about a mile
farther on and the chap there has a motor bike, so I expect he could
lend you a hand."

"Thank you very much," replied the stranger, looking relieved. "I'll
shove her along there and leave her. I am much afraid she's gone
altogether phut for the time being, and will have to be trundled back
to town by rail. Can you tell me if I am anywhere near a place called
Chauncery?"

"Rather," Dick answered, with a grin. "That's our place. It's about
half a mile up the next turning to the left."

"Indeed!" said the stranger, looking somewhat surprised and slightly
dismayed; "I understood that it was occupied by Mrs. and Miss Gordon,
not by anyone with chil--young people," he corrected himself hastily.

"So it is. But at present they've got us, owing to circs. We are Mrs.
Gordon's grandchildren."

"Oh--I see! I hope that Mrs. and Miss Gordon are in good health?"

"Pretty bobbish, thank you," Dick was answering when Mollie interrupted:

"Can we give you a lift? We are on our way home, and I am sure it is
going to rain hard presently."

"That is a very kind offer," the motorist replied gratefully, "and I
wish I could accept it, as I am a trifle lame; but I can't very well
leave my machine lying derelict by the roadside, and I fear that your
hospitality cannot be extended to the old bus, I thought perhaps--if
you would be so very kind--you might drop a message at the smithy you
mentioned, and I will wait here until they send someone along."

But the word "lame" had roused all Mollie's sympathy. "How lame are
you?" she asked. "Is it a wound? I am lame too--only a sprained ankle,
but I should hate to walk from here to Chauncery."

"Of course you couldn't," the motorist said kindly. "I am not so bad as
that. My wound healed long ago, but it has left rather a crocky foot
behind. I could manage well enough, however, if someone from the smithy
would come and push the bike."

"Tell you what," Dick suggested; "if you hop in and look after Mollie,
Jerry and I will push the bike to the smithy; we'll be after you in two
jiffs."

The stranger looked at Dick with a smile and a slight lift of his
eyebrows. "You are very trusting, young man. Supposing I run away with
the pony and the cart and the sister? What will you do then?"

"Stick to the bike," Dick answered promptly, "I have been wanting one
most frightfully badly, and Father says I might as well ask him to give
me the Isle of Wight. Besides--you _said_ you knew Grannie and Aunt
Mary."

"Well, I happen to be quite a safe person, so you're all right this
time, but it wouldn't _always_ do, you know," and the stranger gave his
head a warning shake. "You are exceedingly kind. I only fear it would
be rather a heavy job for you."

But this the boys denied strenuously. "If we stick, one of us will go
and collect young Simpson and the other will watch the bike; but we'll
be as right as rain--and we'd better hurry up." Dick left the trap as
he spoke by the simple means of dropping over the side, and Jerry
followed his example.

"I had better give you my name for Mr.--Simpson, did you say?--Major
Campbell--Hugh Campbell."

There was a dead silence. If the stranger had said "George the Fifth of
England" he could not have produced more effect. All three stared at
him with their mouths open. "What's the matter with that?" he asked.
"It's a very respectable name, and it really does belong to me. Perhaps
I should give you my card." He put his hand in his breastpocket.

"Oh no," Mollie said rather breathlessly. "No--please don't mind--it's
quite all right, only--you look so young."

"So _what_?" exclaimed Major Campbell, standing stock still with his
hand in his pocket.

"I mean," Mollie explained nervously, "I mean--" looking at the boys
for help, but in vain, "I--you--so young to be a friend of Grannie's"
she ended feebly.

"You're a goose, Moll," Dick broke in. "We once knew a Hugh Campbell,
but it was years and _years_ ago, and he was ever so much younger than
you--he was my age--and there must be thousands of Hugh Campbells."

"Years and years ago! Your age! And she says I look too young!"
repeated Major Campbell in pardonable bewilderment. "How old do I
look--five perhaps?"

Mollie blushed, and the boys giggled. "Look here," said Dick, "if we
stand here till midnight discussing Major Campbell's age we won't get
home to tea, and then Aunt Mary will send out a search party, and we'll
look pretty asinine. Long John's getting baity, he'll bolt in a minute.
Take the reins, Mollie. Don't eat all the strawberries, and tell Aunt
Mary that cherry jam is my fancy. Come on, Young Outram."

Major Campbell saw the boys start before taking the reins from Mollie.
Long John gave his head an impatient toss, and set off with the
determination that he would not stop again for anybody till he was in
sight of his stable.

A hundred thoughts chased each other through Mollie's mind. Of course
this could not possibly be _that_ Hugh Campbell. It would be altogether
_too_ queer. And yet--after all, nothing could be much queerer than the
experience they had already had. Putting one thing and another together
it did seem to be more than a coincidence that a Hugh Campbell should
be on his way to see someone who had a green diamond set in a ring
given to her "long, long ago". She stole a look at her companion as he
sat opposite her, his eyes fixed on the road ahead and his thoughts
obviously elsewhere. Hugh the inventor had not passed even thirteen
years without gathering various little mementoes of his inventions in
the shape of scars here and there, and these had not escaped the sharp
observation of Mollie, the Girl Guide. There had been a tiny gap in his
left eyebrow, the result of inventing a new pattern of firework--a
crooked little finger on his left hand--a funny star-shaped mark on his
right jaw. Some of these and other remembered marks might have been
obliterated by time, but if even one remained she would recognize it.
He had removed his hat and disclosed a head of closely cropped grey
hair, which made him look older. Yes--there was the gap in his eyebrow
_and_ the crooked finger. Mollie felt certain that this was indeed the
inventor.

"Have you ever been in Dublin?" she asked abruptly, forgetting for the
moment that asking questions was forbidden.

"In Dublin?" echoed Major Campbell, bringing his eyes and his thoughts
from the winding road and concentrating both upon Mollie. "Are you a
thought-reader, Miss Mollie? For I was thinking of Dublin at that very
moment. Yes, I have been there. Indeed, it was there that I first met
Miss Gordon, at a ball at Dublin Castle. I was visiting some people she
knew, and later on she joined us. My sisters were over here at that
time too. Has Miss Gordon ever mentioned the O'Rourkes to you?"

"Yes," said Mollie, feeling absolutely giddy with excitement, "that is,
no--not exactly----" she felt very confused--"I mean--was there a
Desmond O'Rourke?"

"That's right," said Major Campbell, nodding his grey head, and
apparently too wrapped up in his own memories to notice Mollie's
confused answer. "Good old Desmond! Of course he was home then too.
Dublin was a very different place in those days, and we had what you
youngsters would call the time of our lives. It was a long time
ago--long, long ago." He sighed, and his thoughts evidently wandered
away again from his agitated little companion, which Mollie felt was a
good thing, as, if he had been observing her closely, he would
certainly have thought that the poor child was "not _quite_ on the
spot".

She was now quite convinced that this was really Hugh, the brother of
Prudence and Grizzel. He showed no signs of remembering her, but, of
course, she said to herself, what was only yesterday to her was forty
years ago to this elderly man--and, besides, perhaps the
Time-travelling was all hers and Prue's and he was never really in it
at all. "Like Alice in the Red King's dream," she thought vaguely. She
felt sure, too, that it was he who had given Aunt Mary the green
diamond long ago, though why he had never married her was past Mollie's
power of understanding. Grown-up people did--and left undone--the most
incomprehensible things. In the meantime she felt that she would like
to give her aunt some sort of warning of the surprise in store,
otherwise Aunt Mary might be _too much_ surprised. Mollie herself hated
with all her might and main showing her feelings before people--but
_how_ to prepare Aunt Mary! That was the difficulty. She put all her
Guiding wits to work, but nothing feasible suggested itself. There was
no boy to send ahead with a message, and, of course, she could not send
Major Campbell himself. How on earth could she get even the slightest
warning conveyed.

The had begun to climb the hill which led to Chauncery gate; Long
John's enthusiasm cooled a little, and he dropped into a jogging zigzag
walk. Major Campbell was looking about him with interest, "Just the way
I did," Mollie thought--and then the idea came.

"I'm going to signal to Aunt Mary that we are nearly home," she warned
her companion, "so that she'll have tea ready," and, putting her hands
to her mouth, she gave a long, shrill "cooo-eeeee!" "Now," she said to
herself, "that should remind her of Australia and Desmond O'Rourke and
green diamonds."

But Mollie's brilliant idea had not exactly the effect she expected.
When the sound of that shrill cooo-eeeee penetrated to the
morning-room, Aunt Mary did indeed think of Australia, but she also
thought, naturally enough, that the children were in difficulties and
needed her help. So, a few minutes later, Mollie and Major Campbell saw
a slim figure, clad in a short skirt and jumper, running down the hill
as fast as a pair of active feet could carry it.

"Oh, _dear_!" Mollie exclaimed, "Aunt Mary thinks something is wrong,
and when she sees no boys and you here instead she will think it is
wronger."

"_That_ can't be Mary Gordon!" exclaimed Major Campbell. "She doesn't
look much older than you!"

"It is, though," Mollie replied hurriedly, more flashes of genius
scintillating through her brain. "Jump out and meet her, Major
Campbell, and tell her we are all right."

This suggestion evidently met with entire approval, for Major Campbell,
adopting Dick's tactics, was over the side of the cart and striding
(with a slight limp) up the hill "Before you could say Jack Robinson,"
Mollie quoted, as she took the reins and tactfully directed Long John's
attention to an extra juicy patch of grass. Between his greed and her
excitement they nearly overturned into the ditch, but a kindly boulder
saved them in the nick of time.

"I must say," Mollie soliloquized, "he is fairly old for Aunt Mary,
though he doesn't look it even with that white hair. What _will_ the
boys say? I believe Aunt Mary has forgotten all about us--there they
go! Up the hill without ever once looking at me. I suppose I may follow
now. Gee-up, Long John. Don't you ever think of _anything_ but eating?"
(which was a little unfair of Mollie under the circumstances).

But if Aunt Mary had forgotten her family she very soon remembered it
again, for she and Major Campbell were waiting at the gate when Mollie
came up, and they all arrived at the front door together.

When Dick and Jerry came within sight of the house, the first thing to
catch their eyes was Mollie at an upstairs window, and a pair of
signalling flags going hard. The boys stopped short.

"It--is--Hugh. It--is--Hugh. It--is--Hugh," the flags repeated
emphatically. "Look--out. With--Aunt--in drawing--room. Beware.
Hurry--up."

"My aunt!" Dick exclaimed appropriately. "What the dickens does she
mean? Aunt Mary and that old chap! Get out! His hair is whiter than
Father's. Aunt Mary has got the hardest overhand serve in Sussex. _She_
doesn't want to get married, I'll bet my boots. Rot!"

"I don't know that," said Jerry. "I rather twigged that when he asked
for her. I believe that old Johnny _is_ Hugh. I think he is a jolly
decent-looking chap, and white hair means nothing nowadays. And after
you're forty I don't see that it matters what age you are." Jerry was
encouraging a romantic tenderness for Prue and her brown curls,
consequently he felt slightly superior to Dick.

The boys left the tell-tale scrunching gravel and trod gently on the
velvety border of grass that edged the drive. They stole round the
house like thieves, and found their way up to Mollie's bedroom. That
young lady hopped round on one foot waving her flags triumphantly.

"I guessed it ages ago," she said, forgetting in her excitement that
"ages ago" was only yesterday morning--it was really very difficult to
keep pace with a Time that behaved so erratically--"Something Aunt Mary
told me about having a green diamond made me wonder. That's why I knew
him before you did. Now Hugh will be our uncle. My goodness!"

The tale of the Desmond O'Rourke conversation convinced even the
unwilling Dick that Major Campbell was Hugh the inventor, but he still
refused to share Mollie's conviction that there was a romance
connecting him with Aunt Mary. "You girls are so jolly sentimental," he
said impatiently. "Why _should_ Aunt Mary want to go and get engaged to
a chap old enough to be her father, or at any rate her uncle, just as I
have arrived. I bet I play a better game of golf than he does, and even
Bemister says my tennis has improved a lot this term."

"_I_ agree with Mollie," said Jerry, trying to look romantic, "I
thought so first go-off, as soon as he said 'Miss Gordon'; there's a
look--"

"If it's the look you think you've got on just now it's a fairly
imbecile one," Dick interrupted scornfully. "Perhaps you are in love
with Mollie!"

Mollie, who was rather tired, was leaning back against her pillows, her
bandaged foot lying on the bed and the other foot swinging over the
side. Her short, blue-serge skirt was at its shortest and made no
pretence at hiding her serviceable blue knickers, from which emerged a
pair of useful girl-guidish legs, suitably clad in black merino
stockings and lace-up shoes. Her bobbed hair was for the moment rough
and tumbled, and she still held her flags spread out on either side of
her. No one could have looked less romantic, and they all three had to
laugh at Dick's suggestion. He cheered up slightly.

"Anyhow--now perhaps we can find out a few things--what the blood was,
and how rich the diamond-mine made them."

"And if Grizzel made her fortune in jam," Mollie added, "and if Hugh
ever invented an aeroplane."

"He's in the R.A.F.," Jerry remarked, "we saw it on the card he gave
us."

This reminder cheered Dick up still more. If his favourite aunt had the
bad taste to throw over a promising football nephew for anything so
wishy-washy as a lover, it was consoling to know that the wisher-washer
might include an aeroplane. "Perhaps he'll take us up one of these days
if we behave nicely about Aunt Polly-wolly-doodle," he said hopefully;
"that is, if there really is anything in Mollie's tosh. He looks an
aged old party to be turning somersaults in the air, I must say."

The welcome sound of the tea-bell put an end to their discussion, and
soon Dick was drowning his sorrows in strawberries and cream. It was
rather a bad--or good--sign that Aunt Mary and the mysterious Major
Campbell were absent, but on the whole it was a relief. Only a somewhat
preoccupied Grannie was there to attend to their wants. No one spoke
very much. There was a slightly depressing atmosphere about that tea,
so carefully prepared by the missing aunt. The place where she usually
sat looked extraordinarily empty, much emptier, Mollie thought, than it
did when her aunt merely happened to be out. As soon as tea was over
the boys went off to visit the puppies again; Grannie, still inclined
to be silent and absent-minded, sat down to her knitting; and Mollie,
feeling somehow more lonely than she had done before the boys came,
wandered into the deserted morning-room. She picked up a book she had
been interested in yesterday, but it had lost its flavour and she soon
laid it down and went over to the window, where she stood looking out
at the wet garden. It was raining in earnest now, not heavily but
steadily; little pools were collecting in the gravel, rose-petals were
dropping in showers, and the flowers in the herbaceous borders were
beginning to look as if they had had enough rain for the present and
would welcome now a chance to dry themselves. Mollie opened the window
wide and seated herself sideways on the sill, heedless of the raindrops
that blew against her face and blouse. For a long time she stared out
into the rain, seeing not the well-kept garden before her, but the
cypress-bordered path in that other garden.

The sound of the clock striking made her turn her head and look
indoors. The room looked dark and dull. Aunt Mary's work-basket stood
open on the table, with her work lying where she had flung it down when
she ran out to meet Mollie. The jig-saw puzzle was tidied away, and the
sofa cushions sat in a prim row on the sofa, with nothing about them to
show how often a kind hand had tucked them in behind a young invalid's
back. The volume of Shakespeare still lay on a side-table, and reminded
Mollie freshly of Prue's first visit.

"I am being sorry for myself," she thought, "and of all the useless
things--! I will go upstairs and change my frock and tidy my hair, and
then write to Mother. And when the boys come in we must find something
to do. It is simply horrid of me to be moping round because dear Aunt
Mary is happy, especially as it is the very thing I was keen on
yesterday. I feel as if I lived in the middle of one of Hugh's
shadow-clocks," she sighed as she went slowly upstairs, "with Yesterday
and To-morrow going round me all the time, and my own shadow falling on
them both." This poetic fancy rather pleased her, and she decided to
put on her best evening frock and fasten her hair with a rose velvet
bandeau.

She was clasping a pale coral necklace round her throat when there came
a tap at the door, followed by "May I come in?" and then Aunt Mary
herself appeared. And such a radiant and smiling Aunt Mary that all
Mollie's depression vanished in the twinkling of an eye. She hurried
across the room and gave Mollie a hug.

"Why--how pretty you have made yourself, Mollie darling. That is sweet
of you, for I want you to look your very best this evening. I have a
most astonishing piece of news for you--why do you laugh, you naughty
girl? I don't see how you can possibly have guessed, and I am sure
Grannie didn't tell you."

Mollie laughed again as she returned her aunt's hug: "It was not so
frightfully difficult to guess, after what you said about the green
diamond ring yesterday--why, you have got it on! It _is_ lovely, isn't
it? I think it is _just_ as beautiful--" Mollie stopped in some
confusion, "I mean it is the loveliest ring I ever saw. If I ever get
engaged I should like one exactly the same."

"I hope it will bring you a little more luck than it brought us to
begin with," Aunt Mary said, with a sigh, looking down at the hand
which lay in Mollie's. "It is ten years since I got it, and if you had
asked me yesterday I should have said it would perhaps be another ten
before I could wear it like this, but all sorts of wonderful things
happened all of a sudden and here we are! But I cannot understand why
you guessed anything yesterday, you funny child. I am sure I said very
little."

"It wasn't what you _said_, it was how you _looked_. And you didn't
hear yourself sighing, Aunt Polly-wolly-doodle. We were doing _As You
Like It_ at school before I got measles, and we learnt something about
people in love, I can tell you!" Mollie nodded her head wisely. "I am
not romantic myself like the girl who was doing Rosalind, but I'm not
_quite_ so blind as a bat is, and I came up with Major Campbell this
afternoon."

"Dear me!" Aunt Mary exclaimed with a laugh, "you are getting
dreadfully grown-up, Mollie. I hope you don't--that you don't think my
dear old Hugh is really old, because he happens to have rather white
hair. It is the heart that counts, and his blessed old heart is as
young as yours. Now I must run and dress. Call the boys and tell them
to come in and be nice to their new uncle. You have simply _got_ to be
friends."

Half an hour later three exceedingly tidy and rather prim young people
were formally introduced to "Uncle Hugh", who surveyed them gravely
through a pair of gold-rimmed eyeglasses. Mollie was not sure whether a
twinkle she thought she saw belonged to the eyes or to the glasses. "I
could almost believe that he remembers the Time-travellers," she said
to herself. But if he did he gave no further sign of it, nor could the
children see much trace of the boy Hugh in this keen-eyed,
white-haired, brown-skinned stranger.

"I suppose you are detesting me with all your might," he remarked as
they seated themselves. "You have all my sympathy. I should detest
myself if I were you. But you have had her for a good many years,
haven't you? It is high time that she flew off with me."

"Is she going to fly?" Dick asked with interest. "I could put up with
getting married myself if my wife came in an aeroplane and took me for
a jolly good flight. I could chuck her out if I didn't like her," he
added, with a grin.

"The very first time I ever flew in my life," Major Campbell said, "was
in a balloon, and I played at the game of chucking out, and got a
fright which I am convinced caused my hair to turn prematurely grey.
Would you like to hear about it?"

"Ra-_ther_!" Dick and Jerry replied together. (Now perhaps the mystery
of the blood might be explained.)

So Major Campbell told them the story that they already knew nearly as
well as he did himself--in fact, Mollie found herself on the point of
correcting him upon one or two points. He told it well, better than he
had done on that agitating occasion so many years ago, but--he did not
divulge the mystery.

It was almost too tantalizing to be endured. Mollie had to keep
repeating to herself "A Guide's Word is _Always_ to be Trusted," as she
reflected upon that most provoking promise extracted from her by Prue.
It was so long ago, surely a question, one question, would not matter
now. Unfortunately it was also, as Mollie expressed it to herself "so
short ago" that she could remember Prue's words only too plainly: "_You
must not ask questions however much you want to_." It is true that she
had broken the rule once, but it had been in forgetfulness, not
deliberately. Dick and Jerry were perhaps less picturesque in the
manner of their vows, but they certainly had no intention of breaking
them. It was Aunt Mary who unconsciously came to the rescue:

"And what _was_ the blood that wasn't blood?"

"Oh, that! That was merely--that was merely----" Major Campbell stopped
and began to laugh.

"Merely what? Be quick," said dear Aunt Mary, "we are longing to know."

"I am sorry--I hate to let you down, but it was only dye. Desmond had a
notion that he could make a fortune with a native dye
factory--vegetable dyes, you know. But it never came to anything. I
think it is rather a pity he didn't persevere; he might have done
something with it."

Dye! Well, of all the prosaic endings to a thrilling tale! And yet,
when the children came to think of it, what else could it have been?
They were annoyed at themselves for not thinking of such an obvious
thing. Major Campbell laughed again when he saw the blank look on three
faces.

"It's a poor end-up, isn't it?" he said. "Why did you force me into it?
But there is still the stone, if you would like to see it. You will
find it over there on the writing-table."

Dick fetched the stone--the identical stone they had last seen in
Hugh's hand forty years ago. After all, the end was not so prosaic!

It looked little the worse for its adventures through Time and Space as
it lay in Dick's hand. An inscription had been scratched in and inked
over:

  Hugh Campbell }
                    August 4th, 1880.
  Desmond O'Rourke }
  Mary Gordon. 1910.

They looked at in silence for a minute.

"It reminds me of a tombstone," Dick remarked cheerfully, "if you wrote
'Wife of the Aboves' under Aunt Mary's name it would look jolly
mysterious."

"Grand-daughter of one of the aboves would be more appropriate," Major
Campbell said ruefully, smoothing the back of his grey head with one
hand, while with the other he gave a gentle tug to a stray lock of Aunt
Mary's pretty brown hair.

"Fiddlesticks!" Aunt Mary said briskly. "We'll get you a wig if you
feel so badly about it, or perhaps Desmond would dye you a nice bright
red. No--I'll tell you what would be really interesting--if you could
write on your stone the names of all the people whose lives it dropped
into that day. There are Desmond and Prue and their children" (Jerry
looked up with a startled glance), "and their wonderful grandchild"
(Jerry's eyes were round with dismay. Farewell, Romance!), "and Grizzel
and Jack and _their_ children, for Grizzel would never have met Jack if
Prue hadn't married Desmond. And there's me, for if you hadn't got
tangled up with the O'Rourkes we should probably never have met, even
though our greats and grands were such friends. Then we may add Dick's
name to our list, for I mean to have him out in Australia one of these
days, and perhaps Jerry too--who knows! And Mollie may go green-diamond
hunting among the young O'Rourkes--Brian would do nicely." Aunt Mary
laughed mischievously at Mollie.

"That _would_ be a sermon in stones and no mistake," Major Cambell
said, with a smile. "We should require a regular palimpsest to hold
them all. Think of Grizzel and all the pies she loves to have her
fingers in--all those people on their fruit farm for instance, mostly
people who have been down on their luck one way or another. And the
young persons she has helped with what she calls their artistic
careers. And Prue with her army of Girl Guides!"

"And all through one little stone," Aunt Mary said, taking the stone
into her own hand and looking at it thoughtfully.

"I expect the green diamond had more to do with it than the stone,
really," Mollie said dreamily, thinking to herself that if Desmond had
not found the ring he would not have troubled to seek for the
stone-thrower. She would have pursued this interesting line of thought
had not someone at that moment trod upon her well foot, and someone
else pinched an arm hard. These delicate attentions brought her back to
reality and she felt that she had "dropped a brick" pretty badly. Aunt
Mary looked puzzled, and Major Campbell's eyes twinkled--or was it his
eye-glasses?

"The diamond may have been a temptation," he said, "but I hope it
wasn't such a bribe as all that comes to. You have to remember that she
might have stuck to the ring and thrown me over any time all these
years."

Mollie breathed a sigh of relief. Her words had evidently been
misunderstood--or had he understood and come to her help? She wished he
would take off those glasses!

"Catch her!" Dick was saying indignantly, "Aunt Mary is a jolly good
old sport! You don't know her half as well as I do if _that_ is what
you think."

[Illustration: THERE THEY WERE--OH, HOW MOLLIE LONGED TO KEEP THEM!]

"Don't I?" said Major Campbell, turning to look at Aunt Mary, who was
beginning to show signs of embarrassment under so much scrutiny. He
took off his eye-glasses, but immediately replaced them by a pair of
large round tortoise-shell spectacles through which he gazed at her
solemnly.

"What _are_ you doing, Hugh? Take off those absurd things this moment,"
Aunt Mary commanded as the children laughed.

"I am looking at you through stronger glasses," he answered. "I thought
perhaps I wasn't seeing you properly, but the better I see the prettier
you look."

"My hat!" Dick exclaimed, "look at Aunt Mary blushing. She's the colour
of a ripe red currant. I think it's time we did a bunk. Come on, you
kids!"

Late that evening Mollie sat at the open window again, this time to
watch for the boys, who had set out for a belated round of golf. The
rain had ceased and the air was fresh and sweet, but the lingering
twilight was darkened by clouds and the garden was veiled in a ghostly
white mist. Mollie had been listening to talk of times old and new, and
now Grannie had settled down to her nightly game of patience, Major
Campbell was seated in a deep and roomy arm-chair, and Aunt Mary had
gone to the piano.

"Play the old tunes you played me to sleep with," Mollie begged. "I
think I like old tunes best of all."

"So do I, Mollie," said Major Campbell. "Do you remember Prue's old
musical-box, Mary? It is still in existence. Prue always turns it out
on the dear old pater's birthday and has a sort of memorial
service--I'm glad he didn't live to see the war. He was such a
softhearted, confiding old chap, and never could be induced to see the
black spots in poor human nature--he was always ready with an excuse
for any lapse from virtue. He never could screw himself up to the pitch
of giving his children a thorough good rowing, though I am sure we
often needed one badly enough."

Aunt Mary's fingers wandered vaguely over the piano for a few minutes,
and then she began to sing:

  "Oft in the stilly night
   Ere slumber's chain hath bound me,
  Fond memory brings the light
   Of other days around me."

It seemed to Mollie that she could hear the silvery tinkle of Prue's
musical-box again, and see Papa's kind blue eyes.

As she listened to the music and gazed into the misty garden, she saw,
as she thought, the boys standing in the shadow of the black Cedar of
Lebanon across the way. She leaned forward, wondering why they lingered
there so silently. It was not easy to see in the on-coming
darkness--surely there were _three_ figures, and two of them looked
like girls. Her heart gave a sudden jump--yes, she could plainly make
out two girls and a boy. She slipped through the window and crossed the
terraced drive.

       *       *       *       *       *

There they were--dear Prue, with Grizzel clinging to one arm, and Hugh
in the background--oh, how Mollie longed to keep them!

"I was thinking of you, Prue," she said eagerly, "I wanted you so much.
If you could only stay!"

Prue shook her head, with a smile. "No, we have only come to say
good-bye, Mollie. Your Time-travelling is over for this time, you won't
come to our Time any more. Did you like it?"

"I _loved_ it," Mollie answered fervently, not pausing to ask herself
whether it was the Time or the children that she had loved. "If only it
could be _now_, Prue, so that you could stay!"

But Prue shook her head again: "We've got to go. Perhaps some day we
will meet again--Time-travellers often do. I think that's why--that's
why----" she knit her pretty brows in the effort to express a difficult
thought.

"Hush!" Grizzel said suddenly, "she is singing 'I shot an arrow into
the air'; Mamma sings that and I love it. I want to listen; may we go
nearer?"

They tip-toed across the gravel, and stood in the shadow of the
lamp-lit window.


  "I breathed a song into the air,
  It fell to earth I know not where,
  For who has sight so swift and strong
  That it can follow the flight of a song?

  "Long, long afterwards, in an oak
  I found the arrow still unbroke.
  And the song from beginning to end
  I found again, in the heart of a friend."

"I love that," Grizzel whispered. "Papa says you often do find the song
long, long afterwards. I think it's something like casting your bread
upon the waters, though I never could understand why they chose
_bread_. I shouldn't think there would be much of it left after many
days in the water. I like a song better."

Hugh had stepped nearer to the window, and was observing the interior
of the room with curious eyes. "Who's the old buffer with white hair?"
he asked.

Mollie began to laugh, but suddenly stopped. She looked from the boy to
the man--so there _were_ two Hughs! "He is a Time-traveller," she
answered softly, "but he has travelled the other way, forwards, you
know. He has invented a lot of things about flying."

"Has he!" exclaimed Hugh. "That old chap!" He leaned forward and gazed
more intently at the white-haired man. "I wish I was him," he said
wistfully!

"Cooo-eee!"

The call seemed to come from far away, muffled, perhaps, by the night
air.

"They are calling us," said Prue. "We must go--come, Hugh. Good-bye,
Mollie, goodbye."

       *       *       *       *       *

"Where are you, Mollie, my child?" Aunt Mary had risen and was coming
towards the window. Mollie turned to answer her.

"All right, Aunt Mary. I am here looking for the boys."

"Are the boys not there? I thought I heard voices." Aunt Mary leaned
out and peered into the dark. "How dark it is--I can't see--I thought
for a moment I saw someone there--here they are coming!"

"Cooo-eee! Where are you, Moll? We want you."

"It's Dick calling," Mollie said. "I'll go and meet them, Aunt Mary;
it's only a step. Coming, Dick," she called back.

But she found it hard to walk on the wet gravel without her stick, and
after sending another call to the boys stood and waited where she was,
wondering why she had not felt her foot when she had gone to the other
children. She stared into the shadows of the cedar, but the little
figures had disappeared. "I love them," she murmured to herself, "and I
can never forget this week, whether I ever learn to understand
Time-travelling or not. I mean to learn ever so much about Australia
and our other colonies, and about the immigrant ships Prue talked of. I
am glad she is a Guider and that I am a Guide." She looked back to the
lighted window, through which she could see Aunt Mary and Major
Campbell standing together, then forward into the misty dark--she could
hear the boys coming up the hill. "I loved Prue and Grizzel and their
Time," she repeated, "and of course Aunt Mary is going to have a
tremendously happy time now, but--I am glad that _I_ belong to Dick and
Jerry. I like our own Time best; it suits us. It's a good sort of Time
for doing things, and it will be better before we are done with it, if
we all Carry On.

"I'm here, Dick!"

THE END










End of Project Gutenberg's The Happy Adventurers, by Lydia Miller Middleton

*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE HAPPY ADVENTURERS ***

***** This file should be named 6901-0.txt or 6901-0.zip *****
This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
        http://www.gutenberg.org/6/9/0/6901/

Produced by Tiffany Vergon, Charles Franks, and the Online
Distributed Proofreading Team.

Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
be renamed.

Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.

START: FULL LICENSE

THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
www.gutenberg.org/license.

Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works

1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
1.E.8.

1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.

1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
you share it without charge with others.

1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
country outside the United States.

1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
performed, viewed, copied or distributed:

  This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
  most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
  restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
  under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
  United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
  are located before using this ebook.

1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
beginning of this work.

1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.

1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg-tm License.

1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
provided that

* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
  to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
  agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
  Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
  within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
  legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
  payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
  Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
  Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
  Literary Archive Foundation."

* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
  copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
  all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
  works.

* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
  any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
  receipt of the work.

* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.

1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.

1.F.

1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
cannot be read by your equipment.

1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.

1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
without further opportunities to fix the problem.

1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.

1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.

Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm

Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
from people in all walks of life.

Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
www.gutenberg.org



Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.

The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact

For additional contact information:

    Dr. Gregory B. Newby
    Chief Executive and Director
    gbnewby@pglaf.org

Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation

Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.

The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate

While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.

International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate

Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.

Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
volunteer support.

Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
edition.

Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org

This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.